<?xml version="1.0"?>
<feed xmlns="http://www.w3.org/2005/Atom" xml:lang="en">
	<id>http://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/api.php?action=feedcontributions&amp;feedformat=atom&amp;user=112.201.117.48</id>
	<title>Baka-Tsuki - User contributions [en]</title>
	<link rel="self" type="application/atom+xml" href="http://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/api.php?action=feedcontributions&amp;feedformat=atom&amp;user=112.201.117.48"/>
	<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="http://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Special:Contributions/112.201.117.48"/>
	<updated>2026-05-06T18:15:02Z</updated>
	<subtitle>User contributions</subtitle>
	<generator>MediaWiki 1.43.1</generator>
	<entry>
		<id>http://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Shinmai_Maou_no_Keiyakusha:Volume_5_Chapter_3&amp;diff=564030</id>
		<title>Shinmai Maou no Keiyakusha:Volume 5 Chapter 3</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="http://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Shinmai_Maou_no_Keiyakusha:Volume_5_Chapter_3&amp;diff=564030"/>
		<updated>2020-08-01T05:22:08Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;112.201.117.48: /* Part 5 */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;==Chapter 3: A New Master-Servant Contract==&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 1=== &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After a long period of time, the meeting with the Council ended.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart returned to his office, summoned a few of his trusted subordinates and notified them of the future goals requested by the Council, as well as the methods requested to achieve them. This space is filled with high-class furnishings and covered by a thick red carpet, a style that seemed befitting that of a Demon Lord’s. After Leohart explained the general decision reached at the meeting—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—to put the recently excavated spirits into battle, and defeat the Moderates Faction – is it really true?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
First to speak up, was Leohart’s aide Balthier.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can’t take it anymore… Although this is not the first time that genius Council ordered us to risk our lives, it’s too much of a headache this time…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—Luca, what’s the condition of the spirits?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The one Leohart directed his question to, is a young demon holding onto a file.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I’m very sorry… As like yesterday’s report, we managed to successfully release the seal on them, but—“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The youth called Luca lowered his eyes apologetically.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We ran into some problems when attempting to make the Master-Servant Contract with them, so we would need more time to do it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just then, a warm hand rested on Luca’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t be sad about it… After all, those spirits are relics from the Demon-God War, so being able to establish a Contact with it is already amazing, don’t look down on yourself.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gardo…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the blury male demon trying to comfort him, Luca raised his tearful eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gardo’s right, there’s nothing to blame yourself over… no need to act with undue haste.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart then said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well then – according to your estimates, how long do you need to establish a Master-Servant Contract with them?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Four days… No, two days, I will accomplish it in two days!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t I just tell you not to be too hasty… Much less sleep, you didn’t manage to get any rest these few days, right? You’re the only one able to deal with those spirits, so it’ll be bad if you get tired. This concerns our important fight – no sentimental emotions are allowed at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If your majesty says so, then I better prepare the spirits as soon as possible. No problems at all… Even if I collapse, there are many scholars proficient with ancient technology in this city.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Luca… Your majesty Leohart didn’t mean that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eh…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Balthier pointed out with a bitter smile, causing Luca to widen his round eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Indeed, there are many scholars or professors familiar with ancient technology and weapons in this city, however, the only one Leohart can trust unconditionally is you alone, Luca.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With Gardo’s explanation, Balthier also nodded and said: [That&#039;s right]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It’s great that you don’t want to disappoint your deadlines and responsibilities – although you are still young, and as one of those closest to your majesty Leohart, I trust that you are able to understand when your majesty Leohart is concerned for your health?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With Balthier’s edging, Luca finally understood what they are getting at.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……I’m sorry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No need to apologise. Everyone here knows clearly that you are giving your all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart then said while looking at the remorseful Luca with serious eyes:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“As my aide, I will not permit half-assed work and results. I will ask you once more, Luca – under a load where you can withstand, how long will you need to establish the Master-Servant Contract with the spirits?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Three, please give me three days. I will establish the Master-Servant Contract with the spirits in three days! In that time, I will also finish repairs and adjustments to their cores, and they will be ready for battle after doing some simple tests when the Contract is established.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I understand, I will trust your judgement then…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hearing Leohart’s words, Luca then replied with a bright smile: [Yes!]. Gardo then roughly stroked his head, making him shout in retaliation: [Geez! Don’t treat me like a kid!] &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Watching the interaction between Gardo and Luca—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…The spirits are settled, and next is—&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart began thinking about the other problem.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then again – just how are we supposed to materialise the ridiculous order to attack from the Council?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just then, a bitter smile appeared on Balthier’s straight face while he sighed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Although the Moderate Faction’s power and influence is nowhere near as great as in their heyday…there are still many in various parts of the Demon Realm that still hold much attachment for Wilbert. In terms of battle prowess, we are undoubtedly above the Moderates Faction -- so we have to find a justifiable 『Nominal』&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;名目: used to describe a [standard]. E.g. the nominal currency exchange rate&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; to avoid civilians protesting in the various districts.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was right. Carelessly attacking the Moderates Faction will be seen as a one-sided slaughter, inviting criticism.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A war is not purely about a battle of strength –converted political interests are deeply entangled with it. If someone with a ulterior motive were to get a chance at all – the other factions and powers that have been only observing to this day would suddenly rise in power.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Abhorrent old thieves.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Those high-class demons who have lived for a very long time and are among the Council’s ranks, no longer see anyone else as one of their kind; the civilians to them are nothing more than entertainment, the civilians’ lives does not matter at all, only their own appeasement matters. That’s why, they must be thoroughly eliminated.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Also.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart deeply believed, that only he and his comrades will be able to accomplish that big task.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hence, he had to obey the Council for now in order to preserve his position as the Demon Lord, but that didn’t mean that he had to let them have all they want.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as Leohart began to think deeply about the Nominal—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—Well, I do have a reason to make people sit by quietly and watch us attack the Moderates Faction.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Someone who had also answered to the summon but yet had remained quiet until now spoke.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That someone is Naruse Mio’s new observer after Zolgear stirred up some problems.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Someone who had entered the Human Realm with the alias Takigawa Yahiro, a youth attending the same school as Naruse Mio.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…And what would it be, Lars?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart asked, raising an eyebrow, to which Lars answered blatantly:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wilbert’s daughter – Naruse Mio, is currently within the Demon Realm.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—Are you for real?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Shrugging to Balthier who widened his eyes in disbelief, Lars answered:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What I said is indeed the truth… After Wilbert’s demise, the Moderates Faction has come to a standstill over the problem of insufficient battle potential. After those people wrecked their brains over this, their solution is to bring Naruse Mio to the Demon Realm. Although it is unclear if they will legimately crown her as a new Demon Lord or extract the power she inherited… they will want to make use of her to regain some of their former glory.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hence—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hence – we just have to take advantage of their way of thinking. The Moderates Faction wants to make use of Wilbert’s daughter and her inherited power to rule over the Demon Realm once again – we should be able to shut the other factions in the Demon Realm if we were to say that we dispatched our forces in response to their rebellion.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see… If what you say is the truth, it is indeed a reason justifiable enough to send out our troops.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hearing Leohart say so--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara, Your Majesty -- you don’t trust what your aide says?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lars replied playfully. In reply to the sarcasm from his fellow comrade from the previous war--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lars, there’s still us here -- stop using that disgusting tone.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright alright… So, do you not trust me, Leohart? That piece of information is supposed to be highly classified and even the people within the Moderates Faction don&#039;t know about it, so it’s not your fault if you doubt me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In reply to the smiling Lars, Leohart said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, I believe you -- you are a spy sent here by the Moderates Faction, so it’s normal for you to receive classified information.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart already knew long ago that Lars is a spy sent by the Moderates Faction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
How long ago? --The answer is, right from the start. Leohart had took in Lars while knowing clearly of its consequences. And Lars had accepted becoming Leohart’s subordinate while knowing clearly of what consequences that would bring. Lars’s current identity within the Current Demon Lord Faction, is that he is a newbie to the Current Demon Lord Faction who had defected from the Moderates Faction; as to the Moderates Faction, he is playing the role of a spy who successfully infiltrated the enemy’s camp. That, is the mask that Lars had voluntarily put on.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And right now -- the only ones who know of Lars’s true identity, are the few present in the room.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Is this really fine, Lars?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart then asked:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You are not only a spy sent from the Moderates Faction, but also Naruse Mio’s protector. To you who had grew up under education from the Moderates Faction, shouldn&#039;t Wilbert be your most admired person?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes, it is -- all that is already past me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[After all], Lars continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I have already personally ended Zolgear’s life, avenging my brothers… I have no more obligation left to do anything for the Moderates Faction.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s right -- it was Lars himself who told the people in this room that he ended Zolgear’s life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The reason that Leohart had sent Balthier to investigate when Zolgear’s psionic response disappeared, is because an agreement was already made with Lars beforehand. Leohart’s goal is to wipe out the old bastards of the Council -- Zolgear who was one of them had killed many who were like brothers and sisters to Lars; thus the two of them agreed that when the chance comes, Lars will personally end Zolgear’s life. Hence, when Zolgear’s psionic response disappeared, Leohart’s first guess was that Lars had successfully completed his revenge -- and had then received confirmation from him himself. Thus--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I’ve told you before, that from now onwards, I will continue to help you get rid of those leeches -- those scum no different from Zolgear, so don’t worry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There were no signs of lying at all in Lars’s words, but--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…That’s not set in stone.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart then continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lars… The reason you gave your assistance to me up till now, wasn’t it because that I, who wanted to kill those scum, could help you to personally kill Zolgear? Now that you had accomplished your objective -- isn’t it right that you have no further obligation to provide anymore assistance?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Right&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In point of fact -- you had chosen Jin Toujou’s son to work with to kill Zolgear, not me. So, shouldn’t it be natural for you to continue working with him?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haven’t I told you already? I didn’t choose him because he is better than you…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lars sighed again, and continued in a low voice:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The reason was -- if I had continued to observe and do nothing, Toujou Basara might have very well killed Zolgear himself, putting to waste my years of effort and plotting. So I had no choice but to work with him to be able to personally kill Zolgear, that’s simply all that is to it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Jin Toujou’s son has that much power?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Balthier asked doubtfully:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Marquis&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;a nobleman ranking above a count and below a duke.&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; Zolgear might have been old, but that person who had been known as 『Sword King』 was fairly powerful; and yet the youth called Toujou Basara… From your reports, he doesn’t seem to have enough power to be able to defeat Zolgear, right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Affirmative. That person’s power is indeed below that of Zolgear’s. But I think…even without my help, he would still be able to rescue Naruse Mio and defeat Zolgear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lars’ seriousness, caused the others to become silent, and then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then again -- an opportunity to personally kill Zolgear came to me just like that, so how could I possibly let it go?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lars said with a bitter smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, since that is the case, no need for anymore further speculation. Don’t worry anymore, when the Great War ended, someone had asked me to help take good care of you”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ? Just who would even do tha--“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--That would be Your Highness Riara.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lars’s answer--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Onee-sama…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart showed surprise.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Who could possibly reject her request when being asked by that smiling face? If there’s a need, we could just send the spirits I brought along with me to defeat the Moderates Faction; on the other hand, if you still want me to leave being unable to trust me, I will just obediently leave.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No need to do any of that, there will be no need for you to leave.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At Lars’s suggestions, Balthier sighed and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We have already known you for so many years since the Great War, of course I believe you -- I only fear that you would return to the Moderates Faction should you leave or take the spirits along with you. Both me and your majesty Leohart knows too well just how troublesome of a person you can be.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara, is that so?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As Lars shrugged his shoulders with a [Ah]--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Then hand the spirits over to me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A bulky figure said with a low voice -- Gardo.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“As an aide, Balthier would want to avoid leaving Leohart’s side. And since Lars is not an option, I am the only one left.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……I’m sorry, Gardo.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart lowered his eyes, and then said to the older male demon:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The one who was originally supposed to be the Demon Lord was you -- no, you&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;A more respectful version of calling someone is used here&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From the same generation of high-class demons as Leohart, Gardo’s powers and bloodline was seen to be the most suitable for the throne by the old elders not from the Council, but from the Conservative Faction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, in the process of changing the Conservative and Radicals Factions’ image that now is a new era within the Demon Realm, the old elders from the Council still chose Leohart to be on the throne.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--And Gardo had no choice but to follow their decision.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And Gardo voluntarily chose to be a subordinate of the new Demon Lord, becoming Leohart’s aide.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The edges of the lips of that selfless male curled into a smile, and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t mind it, I am also here to be a helping hand. I would of course be delighted to give my assistance to you, who wants to change the world where authority had completely fallen into the Council’s hands after Wilbert’s failed attempt to cleanse and change it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gardo…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Luca looked on worriedly, and Gardo once again patted his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“When Luca is done doing his stuff with the spirits, I will immediately head out to Wildart City with our troops -- is that decided?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course, and make sure that they can no longer do anything against us.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart nodded, and Balthier then supplemented:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I agree. If possible, deal with their leader Ramsas&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;kill&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;, and let none of them escape. He is Wilbert’s brother, and had gathered the support of many various civilians; if he is gone, the Moderates Faction will most likely collapse.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I understand -- what should I do about Wilbert’s daughter?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After pondering for a few seconds, Leohart gave a reply to Gardo in a calm voice:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Try to capture her alive. In order to obtain a power to make it possible for us to go against those old bastards in the Council, it would be for the best if we stick to the original plan and use the inherited Wilbert’s power effectively; That is something that is definitely worth us doing this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 2===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even after Ramsas had returned to the city, Mio and the rest were not brought back to that small cramped room.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It probably was to be expected. After all, it was a result of Klaus mediating.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The extravagant luxurious dinner atop the table in the luxurious dining room -- even that was assorted to all of their tastes of the food in the Human Realm, with careful and intricate seasoning and preparations -- Sheera and Klaus who was also at the table, as well as Zest and Noel who was responsible for serving them, even gave them detailed introductions for every single dish. Amongst the hospitality, Ramsas was not to be seen at the table throughout the dinner even when he was supposed to have returned to the city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--And an hour has already passed since they all had returned to their respective rooms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Accompanied by Yuki, Maria, and Kurumi, Naruse Mio appeared in a space filled with humidity and warm air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This space where the naked girls barely showed some decency, is the large bath for female guests.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This large bath filled with thin white steam, was carved from marble -- the grand and impressive facility, gave off the impression and feel of a luxurious high-class hotel or hostel.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Such amazing places to take a bath are rare. It’s a pity that Basara had to be absent from this.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Otherwise, they could just announce to the people in the city who they are.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Basara had rejected that idea while giving a bitter smile, saying that he didn’t want to provoke the people in the city for no reason, and Mio could only just give up on it. Now -- Mio is sitting on a chair by the wall at the washing area, preparing to wash herself, but--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Then, Mio-sama, please excuse me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Saying that from behind Mio’s back is Noel with only a towel wrapped around her. To the ones like Ramsas, she would be of no further use once Wilbert’s power within her is extracted -- but to the ones like Klaus who wished to crown her as a Demon Lord, Mio is the most important VIP they have; thus they even sent a group of people to serve them, from the flushing of the bath to the adjusting of the water’s temperature, to washing them; of course Mio and the others strongly rejected it saying that they wouldn’t be able to relax, but as the other party strongly insisted they receive the proper treatment -- they compromised, letting Noel who they had spent time with touring the downtown areas serve them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah… Sorry to trouble you, Noel.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Mio nodded, and Noel made a obeisance&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;a gesture expressing deferential respect, such as a bow or curtsy&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; with a [Yes]. Firstly using the warm water in the wooden barrel to wash herself, Noel then began washing Mio’s back while creating foam. The maids of the royals and noble were gentle in washing people in order to not damage the skin, and Noel was no different, but--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Eh! Ah…..aaaoo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When the slippery sensation moved across her back, Mio wasn’t able to stem her sexy moans.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I&#039;m only just washing your back… Mio-sama is sensitive? I did hear that Mio-sama had made a Master-Servant Contract with Basara using Maria’s powers, is this related to that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-Well, that…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Mio turned red with Noel’s teasing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Why, am I…!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the joy of being able to take a bath in another Realm, Mio forgot to prepare herself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--Since the time she had made the Master-Servant Contract with Basara, Mio’s sexiness had been developing with each and every time Basara subjugated her, and right now her body has already become incredibly sensitive; but even then, there was no problems at all while taking a bath in her own home. She could control how much force to use while bathing by herself. But there were many times she had to take a bath together with Basara and Yuki as a result of Maria&#039;s plots, and adding on the fact that she had experienced her body being thoroughly washed by Basara many times, she would occasionally accidentally let slip some of the reaction she had in those times.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Could it be that the reason you reduced the number of people serving you, was because you were afraid of people finding out about this? To tell the truth, there was no need for you to worry about that at all…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! …Any more of that, and I will drive you out.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Being glared at by Mio in embarrassment, Noel giggled and said: [I’m very sorry], and then once again began washing Mio quietly. Naturally, a maid wouldn’t just wash Mio’s back, but also her underarms, breasts, butts, hips -- all of that.&amp;quot; Noel scrubbed all of those parts.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! …Ah …Fu ……Ah …Ya …Ah!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Mio began biting her lips in desperation to endure it, but that wasn’t enough to stop her gasps and moans from escaping, and--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Don’t worry. All these, are completely incomparable to when Basara does it himself…!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s right. The techniques used were all completely different when Basara was playing with her body. He was always very bold yet cautious, with love and affection within his unyieldingness -- even if he was very rough, he would never let someone be in pain.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Noel wouldn’t be able to raise her lewd side like Basara did.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…If it was Basara instead, it might have been…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara’s big hands, Basara’s solid chest, Basara’s flair to deliver mindblowing pleasure, and especially Basara&#039;s warmth that relaxed her the most -- thinking about what he had done in the past, what Noel is doing in comparison gives her only slight embarrassment, itches, and some moans that she couldn’t stem; after all, Basara had washed her breasts, underarms, belly button, and even her butt before. Thus, Mio restored her calm and handed over her body to Noel’s washing, and after that came her long hair. Her combing, was just as comfortable at it being done in a salon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Umm, Mio-sama…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just then, Noel suddenly said that, causing Mio to suddenly become vigilant, thinking that she was about to tease her again. But--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“May I ask, how is Lars doing?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lars… Are you talking about Takigawa?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The impression of Takigawa was too strong, making her unable to connect him to his original name.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well… He seems to get along with Basara pretty well, since he spends a lot of time in school with him. Probably because they’re like-minded, those two boys mess around a lot.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But after finding out that Takigawa was the one behind that white mask, Mio and Yuki weren’t very happy. As Takigawa said some cruel words to reopen the wound in his heart while he was critically injured, both of them are still unable to forgive him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Why do you suddenly ask…? Do you know him?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Yes. Lars and I grew up in the same orphanage.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From her tone, it was easy to guess what kind of emotions Noel held for Takigawa.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…It’s the same as me.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She has had the same thoughts when she found out Basara and Takigawa and joined hands in the shadows.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just like when she found out that Maria and Basara had been out in the nights hunting rouge evil beings.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The wanting to ask, just why, were they doing such dangerous things without telling her. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But Mio couldn’t. Because for Mio, Basara putting himself in danger wasn’t for any reason other than protecting her. If Takigawa hadn’t helped; Sheera, who was taken captive by Zolgear, would probably have already been killed. The reason Maria could escape from that tragic ending, was because Basara joined hands with Takigawa. Because of that, Mio couldn’t say anything about it to Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It’s just -- right now, there was a way to erase Noel’s pain, and the key lies within Mio’s hands. So after her hair was washed--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Noel, I--“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Mio turned around, to say something to Noel -- but at that time, someone entered the washing area and sat down on the chair beside Mio. The dissemination of transparent beauty, is Yuki who had also made the same Master-Servant Contract with Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--I’ll be using this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Without looking at either of them directly in the eye, Yuki began to wash herself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even without anyone saying anything, the atmosphere began to become awkward.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Umm, Mio-sama …I shall not interrupt you any further.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From behind Mio’s back, Noel said so as if she had done something wrong, and stood up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please do enjoy our bath, and eliminate fatigue from your body… I will be awaiting orders in the changing room -- Yuki&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Miss Yuki is used here, like the many places in the text&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;, please excuse me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While washing her body, Yuki nodded, and hence Noel left the bath after giving a bow. And then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--You’re thinking that by going to ask Klaus yourself, you can cancel Takigawa’s spying mission, right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hearing Yuki say snappily--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I only just…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Mio lowered her head evasively.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We did not request for a luxurious room or meal, it was all things that they had prepared; so even if they ask us to reciprocate them, we can reject them. However, once we make any request, the situation would be different; if we were asked to reciprocate, it would be difficult for us to reject them. And more importantly -- doing that would be the same as exposing our weak point.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Have you forgotten?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;The demon called Klaus was one of Wilbert’s advisers, a strategist once called the 『Virtuous Elder』. The luxurious rooms, meal, and dining hall and the grand welcoming, all of those were all a performance to make you agree to become the new Demon Lord. If you were to let those people know that you are someone able to sympathise with them, do you even know what the consequences are? If you do not want Takigawa to have an even more dangerous mission, if you want to fulfil the wish of a maid worrying for her childhood sweetheart -- the moment he grabs onto an emotion he can use to make his attack on you, he’ll immediately attempt to use it to make a negotiation or transaction; and if it still isn’t possible, he might even utilise threats…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Stopping here, Yuki turned to look at Kurumi who is bathing together with the loli succubus.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Threats like sending away Maria from your side, and making her carry out suicidal missions are entirely possible -- and since her mother and older sister are here, Maria cannot reject any orders.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………I’m sorry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unable to retort -- Mio lowered her head remorsefully.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No need to apologise… It’s just, I hope that you don’t forget that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And as if giving advice, Yuki then said to Mio:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Even if you still hadn&#039;t decided what to do with Wilbert’s power, I guess that you had already reached a conclusion regarding the identity of 『Naruse Mio』, so don’t go forgetting that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, Mio then nodded in agreement.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Ah, you’re right… I got it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now, she is not the daughter of the previous Demon Lord, but Basara&#039;s family, his sister -- as well as his servant.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
No matter what happens, being by his side is a must. That, is Naruse Mio’s only desire.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And for that very desire, all of them must return to that home one day. Just then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It’s fine if you get it, and I will also think of something to help you out -- because that is also Basara’s wish.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Yuki also quickly expressed to Mio’s agreement. In Mio’s heart, Yuki is a rival she must never fall behind -- but she was also a comrade who could understand more than anyone. Thus--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Thank you, Yuki.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Feeling more at ease, Mio expressed her thanks, mixing in a shade of threatening.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No need for thanks… Oh, that’s right--“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Holding out a towel from the foamy bucket towards Mio, Yuki then said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Mio, help me wash my back.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Towards the tone that of an older sister commanding a younger sister, Mio widened her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Probably giving some advice made her somewhat cocky. Thus Mio smiled and--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You have a really high price tag…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Took that towel and after going behind Yuki, she began scrubbing her back -- not using the towel, but with her hands instead.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The one who had been subjugated by Basara and had her sensitivity raised a lot by him was not Mio alone. That’s why--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Yaaaaaaahhhhhhh!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Yuki let out a cute scream, while jumping up from the stool.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While soaking in the bath, Nonaka Kurumi saw her older sister in the washing area suddenly jump up while screaming.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And then collapse to the floor onto her butt.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『………』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silently turning around to look at Mio who had a victor’s smile on her face, Yuki made her counterattack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After pushing Mio down onto the floor and while straddling over her, she began to violently knead those large breasts.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『 ! ---- 』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Mio screamed, and arched her back under Yuki, and then her two hands began to do the same things to Yuki’s butt, not wanting to be outdone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『 ----! 』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And it was Yuki’s turn to react to a sudden kneading -- the two girls thus began waging a war over their pride. Seeing those two older sisters like that--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
‘’It’s better if I don’t invite trouble onto myself.’’  From within the bath, Kurumi turned around to have her back face the washing area Yuki and Mio were at.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And proceeded to take a stretch in the bath&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;the one where people stretch their backs after waking up in the morning&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;, letting the warmth of the water fill her. Comfortably exhaling a deep breath, she then scooped some water with her hands. The slightly blue hot spring, seemed to have been drawn directly from underground, so it naturally would have rather high demonic concentrations. However--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Ah, it seems to have much less of a load on me now.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Comparing to when she had just arrived in the Demon Realm, the level of discomfort she felt back then now seemed to have been just a dream. Although her getting used to the demonic concentrations had a hand in that, it was not the main reason. Thus--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kurumi raised her left hand from the water and held it out, and gathered her consciousness towards it, and her gauntlet for controlling spirits then materialised. Within some of the notches in the gauntlet, balls of various colours have been inserted. Those were elements needed for communicating with the spirits.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--Right now, there were a few black balls that weren’t there before.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In Lucia’s office, Basara had turned the imbroglio&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;a confused heap; an extremely confused, complicated, or embarrassing situation&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; in her heart into happiness and pleasure and subjugated her, disentangling her emotions -- when she opened her eyes, Kurumi realised that she was on a bed in another room.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing Maria sleeping while snuggled up against her, she then remembered what Basara had done to her, she then became a ball of internal struggles. At that time, Lucia came to that room and upon seeing her situation, Lucia then said to the alert Kurumi in a cold and indifferent tone: [Thank you for being friends with Maria], and gave a certain something to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That something was these black elementals. These black elementals had the protection of high-class spirits in the Demon Realm, which thus allowed Kurumi to communicate with spirits not bound with a Master-Servant Contract while using spirit magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And with the protection of high-class spirits, the difficulty of borrowing a spirits’ power was lowered a lot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For Kurumi who had not made a Master-Servant Contract with Basara and was unable to increase her battle potential by deepening her relationship with him, this was help coming to her when she needed it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia is part of the Moderates Faction and is a demon, and she is the aide of Ramsas who gave the cold shoulder to Mio. That, made Kurumi put up some resistance towards Lucia in the beginning, but accepted her in the end. Reason being, her pride as a hero is not what’s most important now, but it was instead not becoming a burden to Basara and the others.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thus for the period of time while she was in the Demon Realm, she hoped to at least be able to use it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…To think that I would begin to think like this…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If it was the her in the past, it would be unthinkable for her to live together with Maria who lived together with the surveillance target Naruse Mio, much less fight alongside her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Also,&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In their daily life, Maria seemed to be putting her in embarrassing situations every day, and she could only just accept it since she wanted to not be left behind. In fact, not just Maria – it would be even Basara or Yuki sometimes. And that is the reason why Kurumi has become the way she is now, boldly doing lewd and lecherous things in Lucia’s office, exposing her incredibly debaucherous side.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Speaking of which – no matter how embarrassing it has become, rejecting any of that is not an option.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;..So it really seems that the truth is I don’t really hate those kind of things…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just like Mio and Yuki, Kurumi is slowly becoming more and more lewd.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And it’s not only that. Kurumi had turned an event she thought was only possible in her dreams into reality today, to have a kiss with Basara. Although her first time was in her dream, and doing it in reality was only to satisfy Lucia, Kurumi still did automatically move her lips to kiss with Basara’s lips – indulging in her sexuality in her tongue filled with emotions, lusting for Basara’s existence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From the moment when their lips made contact, the warmth and pleasure she received from Basara still remained fresh in Kurumi’s mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kurumi suddenly turned red from the embarrassment and brought her face back into the water partially, while blowing bubbles and not realising that someone was sneaking up on her—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…--My dear Kurumi~♪”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eeeaahhhh!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly being hugged from behind by Maria, Kurumi let out a high-pitched scream.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Oi, don’t go about scaring me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara, weren’t you the one who seemed miffed and ignored me, making a certain someone very lonely~…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Y-You, would you be looking over there – at the place older sis and Mio are?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria giggled and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course I would, but just me alone doing that would be very boring, and that’s why I came over here to enjoy it together with you – just like usual times when we enjoyed erotic films together~.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-Weren’t you the one who forced me to watch them, saying that it was For Academic Purposes…!”&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;most likely a reference to F.A.P. – [F]or [A]cademic [P]urposes; masturbation material search&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“And I wasn’t wrong at all… That’s why this is also research material.”&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;the aforementioned material&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And with a captivating smile, Maria began to massage Kurumi’s breasts and started licking her neck.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At Maria’s assault, Kurumi attempted to put up her death struggle, trying to shake off Maria while flailing her arms about on the water surface, but failing in the end.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hu fufu… You’ve been through this so many times, but you’re just as shy as your first time… Kurumi is really cute~.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With burning flames of passion visible within her eyes, Maria then said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Come, Kurumi. Give me your underarms, expose your underarms&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;underarms / armpit&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;. I want to fill up your weakness with my saliva.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Shit. If this continues, I will fall into one of Maria’s seasoned traps.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And thus, Kurumi turned her line of sight towards the washing area Mio and Yuki were at, hoping for rescue.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Despite her attention leaving that area for only a slight moment, the situation there has already changed a lot. With foam covering their bodies, they were still assaulting each other’s weak spots while gasping and panting heavily, with no intention of giving up at all; they’ve not gotten into the hot spring yet, but their eyes have already become lifeless, voices weak, and skins pink. Of course, they’re completely oblivious to Kurumi’s predicament. When Maria saw that Kurumi now had no one else to turn to for help—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Fufufu, it’s too bad …Come, give it up and let me lick you, you lewd girl hero~”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ !&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;~~~~~~&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As Maria’s lips got closer, Kurumi’s eyes also widened as usual in anticipation of the assault of pleasure.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ah? What’s that elemental, I’ve never seen that colour there before.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria then suddenly noticed those black elementals set into her gauntlet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Which then made Kurumi remember -- what Lucia had said before when she gave them to her. Back then, Lucia had said—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『Please continue to look after my little sister. 』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She did look at the Maria sleeping beside her when she said that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thus, entrusted with looking after Maria, she asked those black elementals to also look after her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, a magic pattern opened up on the floor—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eh--…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the moment Maria let out a weird sound upon seeing that – the loli succubus flew out from the bath together with a large amount of bathwater, colliding with Mio and Yuki by the wall in the washing area, and also sending the stools and bucket flying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-W-What happened!? What’s that loud noise!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Noel frantically rushed into the bath, but Kurumi remained silent, and then got out from the bath quickly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will definitely use it well with much gratitude…Hmph!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Throwing that out behind her, Kurumi then left the bath area on her own first.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 3===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After having dinner alone within his own room, Ramsas left the room, and came to a certain place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A place that can allow one to look over the city with just a single glance – the top of the main tower, which is the city’s highest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Having arrived at that place, Ramsas looked down at the illuminated streets quietly. About fifteen minutes later—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You insisted on not seeing Mio-sama even once… Is this really for the best?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Coming to place after a while, Lucia asked him. Hearing his faithful subordinate’s question, Ramsas then answered in a low voice while not moving his sight from the city areas:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Why should I go and see her?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And with that, Lucia decided to not say anymore, and after giving a bow, she moved back and left Ramsas alone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, Ramsas continued standing while the night wind continued to blow.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Ramsas’s eyebrow twitched slightly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An unnatural change in the night wind’s currents just occurred, and it was at a degree where a normal person wouldn’t notice – there was a pair of eyes, looking at Ramsas from behind him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--It was not Lucia, and not one of the maids serving under her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, some more changes to his surroundings occurred. Sounds of footsteps as if announcing a person’s existence, slowly neared him. Then—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—do you know? There is a place like this platform at where Mio and us live, a place that allows you to look over the nightscape of a city.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Saying those words while standing beside Ramsas, was a youth – Toujou Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Likely, Lucia wasn’t the one who had told this youth of this place; no matter who it was, someone was still being nosy. While looking at the view Ramsas, who had decided not to pursue the matter, was looking at, Basara said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This afternoon… The maid Noel&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Miss Noel&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; had brought us into the city to look around. The view that can be seen from here, is what your younger brother – and you who had took over his work, protected to this day.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing Ramsas return silence as an answer, Basara turned around slowly--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In what you want to protect, why did you not include Mio?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And spit out those words filled with a dark shade.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“After your younger brother died – Zolgear killed his subordinates whom he had trusted to bring up Mio. Although Maria had managed to rescue Mio in a critical moment from Zolgear’s palm, Zolgear had taken Sheera, and then coerced Maria into following his orders…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[But]. Basara said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“According to Takigawa – Lars, you were well aware of this situation, yet you chose to remain quiet and observe, right? No matter how others asked you to prioritise Mio, you still chose to not provide more assistance. Other than Maria who had been coerced by Zolgear, as well as Takigawa who had infiltrated the Current Demon Lord Faction and could not make any obvious moves, you had sent no more help to assist the two with the mission of protecting Mio.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;So why?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Mio is the daughter of your younger brother… In other words, she is your niece. So why did you choose to not make any moves despite knowing that she is faced with such clear danger?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Being questioned with a firm gaze from Basara, Ramsas finally spoke to answer him – he bluntly said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—because there wasn’t a need to at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No need to…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara had already known Ramsas is cold towards Mio.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His reason for still doing all this, was basically just to clarify it all. The truth and reality was just as Lucia had said. Considering that Ramsas has his own set of difficulties and opinions, if Basara would be able to hear about them, he might be able to somewhat understand even if he can’t agree with it. However – Ramsas words just now, was still completely beyond Basara’s expectations.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“There was still no need even when Maria had no choice but to betray Mio after worrying to no end from being coerced by Zolgear? There was still no need even when Mio had been abducted and have who-knows-what done by Zolgear to her? After all these incidents, are you really going to say that there’s no need to increase her protection?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Since the reports have said that she’s completely safe, is there really a need to ask for more?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That was because we…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To be able to safely rescue Mio, they all had racked their brains and struggled with their lives. Viewing it from another angle, perhaps being able to save Mio before she was ruined by Zolgear, as well as safely rescuing Sheera who was taken hostage, was the best possible result. However – if back then Ramsas had accepted Klaus and his other subordinates’ views to take effective actions like increasing the amount of protection, then perhaps the incident of Mio being abducted by Zolgear might have never happened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Additionally, Takigawa even knew where Zolgear was hiding, to the point where he even knew where Sheera was being kept hostage; if he had sent out his elite forces to launch an attack, the culprit known as Zolgear might have already been exterminated long ago. But he hadn’t, so he definitely has no right to speak about it – just as Basara gave his retort while becoming mad, Ramsas finally looked at him, and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You guys – how was it? From what I know, the main reason Zolgear had retreated in his defeat was not because of you guys, but it was Wilbert’s daughter who let her powers go berserk, right? Even if the reason for it going berserk was due to thinking that Sheera had been killed, she would’ve put up a great opposition if Zolgear were to casually make any moves against her. With that, even if you and those girls you knew since you were small weren’t there, she would still be saved in the end. Would that way of thinking be wrong?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Perhaps it might not have been wrong. Even if he hadn’t done anything Mio and Sheera might still be saved.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;However&#039;&#039; – Basara then said wile heavily emphasising:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Those kind of words, can only be said by the people like us who had taken real action to save Mio and the others – people like you who had just remained standing by the sides and did nothing better than try to score points now that that is already over.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara seems to have hit a sore area, and Ramsas remained quiet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…I have no intention of questioning whether your decision was right or wrong. The result in the end was as you said: Mio and Sheera are safe, and Maria and Zest escaped from Zolgear’s control. What I would like to question instead, is if you had intentionally disregarded Mio.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara then continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But, that’s already enough – I already understand it. Originally, I had even speculated if you had given Mio this attitude because your views were different &lt;br /&gt;
from your younger brother… but no matter what you say, I wouldn’t accept it. I have already made the decision to protect Mio – the one who had become my little sister, a person who is part of my family. So no matter how big or noble of a reason or excuse you give me, it’s not my business at all, and doing any of that would be completely meaningless.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—so, do you want to follow Klaus’s words, and let that girl become the next Demon Lord?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the question Ramsas asked in a low tone, Basara shook his head and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No… Klaus&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Mr. Klaus&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; has been very sincere to us, thinking for our sakes at first glance – but he just wants to take advantage of the story that Mio is the only daughter of the previous Demon Lord who had inherited his power, completely ignoring if she has the qualifications to do so and her own will, treating her as only a political tool.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
All Mio wants is to be a normal girl, who lives a peaceful life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And having sent her away from his side to live a peaceful life in the Human Realm that too is also all Wilbert wants.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And yet – Klaus who claims to respect and love Wilbert, disregarded his lord’s wishes, and is pushing for Mio to be a new Demon Lord. Reportedly, the current Demon lord also seems to have been given the throne to become a chess piece by the Council, so the two sides can be said to be equal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Also,&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With his lord’s daughter, the one who had made a Master-Servant Contract being the son of the number one enemy in the Great War, Klaus was especially kind towards Basara to the point where it seemed completely unnatural. Who knows, even the matter of Mio who had no choice but to make a Master-Servant Contract might be taken advantage of; making it into a story where thanks to Wilbert sending troops to put a stop to the Great War, they finally managed to create good relations between the son of the scary [God of War] Jin from the Hero Tribe and the only daughter of the Demon Lord, turning it into another of Wilbert’s achievements.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Both routes are equally bad.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To put it bluntly, all that side wanted are personal benefits – the reason Toujou Basara is unable to accept them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Absolutely.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I do understand that both you and Klaus have your own thoughts and plans, and that the subordinates within the Moderates Faction respect the opinions of you higher-ups. However – you all just want to take advantage of Mio, with no shred of consideration to the person in question. In Mio’s moments of great pain, you refused to lend a hand despite knowing about it, and Klaus followed that decision and stood by idly, both sides are the same. And so from my viewpoint, you all are just trash.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since the moment they were called to the Demon Realm to till now, Basara had submitted to the humiliation, but he could not take it any longer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And so he spit it all out:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I’ll put it bluntly. You guys shouldn’t have called her here, only to just put her aside. You guys had always been ignoring and snubbing her for so long… and now that in order to win against the Current Demon Lord Faction you demand for her presence or for her to hand over her inherited power to you? Stop cracking jokes. That power was given to the one he had not hesitated to separate with by your younger brother to protect herself. Because of her circumstances, Mio has already given up a lot of things; that has to stop.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Listen carefully.&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We will no longer hold anymore hopes and anticipate anything more from you. So at least, stop taking things away from her. To Mio, that power is a gift from her own father, the only bond between them – you guys basically have no rights or authority to intervene in that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ramsas silently listened to Basara ranting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…So this is the son of &#039;&#039;&#039;that man&#039;&#039;&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;I see.&#039;&#039; The report had said that he was exiled from the Hero&#039;s [Tribe], and now I can understand why. This youth, is really indeed not suited to be a Hero.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…He’s far too naive.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ramsas wanted to let this youth carried away in the heat of the moment know of something called ‘Reality’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The lives of the Royal Family do not belong to themselves, they live for the people, and die for the people – not even a single person can escape from that blood tie. Since that girl is Wilbert’s daughter, she is part of the Royal Family, thus she has a duty to dedicate her life for the people.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I’ve said this already, you guys had cast her aside for so long, and yet now you want to use 『Because she is Royalty』 as a reason is just too—“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—Originally living a civilian’s life, and then only to have that life taken away due to the sudden revelation of Royal blood ties; all that is not uncommon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Additionally&#039;&#039; – Ramsas continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Although Klaus and I think and do things differently, the both of us have a duty to protect everything here as the ones who stand over the people. Since you guys had walked through the streets in the evening, you should’ve already seen it clearly. In reality, you protecting that girl like that – could just very well turn all that you saw and everyone you have met on the streets into dust, do you understand?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course I d—“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And Ramsas bluntedly said to Basara trying to refute:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then why are you still being persistent… Then again, you just said that that girl had already given up a lot of things… but she was living happy days in a place unrelated to the political wrangling and fights; that, was thanks to her being Wilbert’s daughter. Now we have a need for her who had lived because of Wilbert’s death, so he called her back – it was just that her time ran out, and that it was time to say goodbye to the unneeded necessity to acknowledge her bloodline and the disregarding of her responsibility.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! ……”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara, whose expression, became complicated—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What you said, was something I cannot completely agree with. You had said, that that girl doesn’t even know that she doesn’t have the qualification, and shouldn’t become the Demon Lord—“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And Ramsas resolutely replied:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is correct. That girl who had tied a Master-Servant Contract with a little brat like you who had been expelled from the Hero [Tribe], who had let herself become a lowly sensual bondage slave; someone like that has no right to become a Demon Lord, and that’s why I wanted her to just obediently hand over Wilbert’s power.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, the atmosphere suddenly changed. Basara’s fighting intent aimed at Ramsas, became even more incisive and cold.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It became blatant killing intent. Then—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Take it back… If not—“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara’s right hand went towards Ramsas, and at that moment—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--That’s enough.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Shinmai_v05_095.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Countless numbers of guns were then aimed at Basara’s throat, held by the maidservants who had surrounded them. Commanding these maidservants armed with weapons, Lucia came to Ramsas’s side—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It’s already difficult enough to overlook the various insults towards Ramsas-sama – if you continue to show disrespect, you shall not be forgiven even if you are Mio-sama and Maria’s saviour.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And said coldly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara remained quiet, and lowered his head. But—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;---------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;?』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The maidservants holding Basara at gunpoint suddenly received a shock, and their bodies tense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rather than decreasing, Basara’s killing intent further increased, and then—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Insults… insults, you said? Those should be my words. Having heard Mio – hearing my own little sister receiving that kind of insult, do you really think this warning is enough to push me over and make me leave it as it is?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As if ignoring the maidservants surrounding him, light appeared in his right hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And his own weapon appeared from the light—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……It’s a shame. I had thought you were smarter than that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia’s eyes narrowed, and just as she was about to give her orders—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“---Kay kay,   ~Th-a-t’s – e-nou-gh ♪”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An extremely hearty voice cut into the tense atmosphere from the side.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ramsas’s head turned, and found Sheera with Zest behind her standing there,&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Mother-sama…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia frowned while looking at her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lucia-ya… If you were to start fighting here, Mio&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;[Chinese]little sis, she refers to Basara and the rest like her little siblings, like the previous chapters&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; and the others would immediately find out, and what would you do if they were to come running over? Even if you are able to incapacitate Basara before they realise, the matter that you argued with him would still come to light. Mio and Yuki both had made the Master-Servant Contract with Basara, so throwing him into the dungeons would be useless.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then—“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—you’ll create a barrier, so that they won’t realise?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera smiled at Lucia preparing a retort and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It’ll be useless. Doing so will only increase their suspicions, and you won’t be able to get Mio’s assistance in the end, are you fine with that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing Lucia become unable to retort, Sheera’s line of sight turned to Basara and she said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Basara, you too should stop making a scene. If you were to start fighting now with Lucia or Ramsas, you won’t be able to make them back down even if you win. It’s great that you love your little sister Mio so much, but if she were to find out you got hurt when you flared up for her sake – she’ll blame herself. Are you still fine with that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera’s words caused Basara to become silent – and he retracted his killing intent soon after, his weapon also disappearing. Seeing this, Sheera smiled and said: [Good Boy.] The maidservants also seemed to relax. Finally, Sheera looked at Ramsas and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well then, I’ll be bringing Basara away – is it fine?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Do as you like.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[Okay.] Hearing Ramsas say so, Sheera immediately brought Basara away together with Zest, disappearing into the house&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;house/castle&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—Ramsas-sama, I’m very sorry, for my mother’s impertinence.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia lowered her head and apologised—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It’s fine… It isn’t that person’s first time creating trouble.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, Ramsas looked out towards the city once again.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Dots of light from the city was spread throughout the city, the stars illuminating the night sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 4===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After being brought away from the platform Ramsas and the others were at by Sheera, Toujou Basara, was then brought to a certain place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That place, is the bath for male guests’ use. He had already taken a bath before coming to the Demon Realm, and right now he wanted to be alone, so he got ready to reject taking a bath, but—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—Right now you are still mad at Ramsas, do you really think you can fall asleep?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was still unable to retort against Sheera. Many things have happened since he entered the Demon Realm, and apart from the nervousness he was expecting, he probably accumulated some stress from things that had went beyond what he was expecting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although relaxing to the point where he would put down his guard must be avoided at all costs, he can’t really see how much longer they would have to stay in the Demon Realm according to the current situation; being too nervous would only cause his concentration to wane, and things would be dire if he were to not be at his best due to wear when needed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And thus, Basara finally accepted Sheera’s suggestion and got ready to take a bath, but--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……For some reason, I knew it would turn out like this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This mother before him is known to be even more mischievous than Maria, due to her following her succubus instincts more than half the time, and so she had followed Basara into the bath as expected. Needless to say, Zest too was also present in the males’ bath.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sitting naked on a stool before Basara, Sheera was trying to suppress her giggles while saying:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well, that’s obvious… Zest&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;calling Zest her imouto&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; is a maidservant serving Basara, while I am her superior. I’m just here to supervise the maid-in-training while she does her duties to ensure that she is serving you well~.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Amazing…&#039;&#039; She is completely different to Maria who always brags, being able to so easily turn a lie into the truth. Completely masterful.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What if after Maria grows up, what would happen if she turns out just like Sheera? As a touch of anxiety crossed Basara’s mind--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Well then, here comes your punishment.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest said that, and then began washing his back -- with her large matured breasts.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Hold it right there! Why are you doing it so naturally!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara couldn’t help but to turn around, only to find a naked foamy Zest say tearfully:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I’m very sorry… I’m still not used to these kind of things, did I hurt you?”&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;cause you pain?&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uhh, no… That wouldn’t.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;A question: Which male would ever experience pain from being rubbed against a female’s breasts?&#039;&#039; --  that, is one question Basara very much wanted to scream out, but was unable to thanks to Zest seemingly blaming herself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I&#039;m very sorry Basara&amp;lt;Mr.&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;… Sheera-sama had told me that this was how to help wash a Master, and had even intricately thought me how to do so. This is just my inability to master the art.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I understand… It’s fine, and you’re doing it not too bad -- no, the problem does not lie with you at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After hurriedly consoling Zest behind him, he then stared at Sheera who was before him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sheera… Just what in the world did you teach Zest?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara, Basara, don’t make such a scary face… Is anything wrong?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera then boasted while smiling:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I honestly don’t know what else a woman would use when washing a male… I guess that this must be the fault of the differences between the cultures of Demons and Humans.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, no matter how you think about it, it only exists within the culture of you succubi.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Hurry up and apologise to the other races making up the Demons Race, you loli succubus Mom.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, is there something known as 『Local Customs』 in the Human Realm? Over here, of course you would have to accept the customs of our culture, isn’t that right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Rather than [Local], it feels more like I’ve entered an urn.” &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt; Rather than customs of a community, it seems more like ones that of a cult&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Too deep…&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;It&#039;s starting to get spiritual&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If you insist, it would be fine if you want to wash yourself…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera then made an apologetic face,&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But that means your maid isn&#039;t doing her job… Later I will have to hand Zest a punishment -- the kind that is especially painful.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…………I get it already. Alright, Zest… I’ll be counting on you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It’s as if Basara did a bad deed, yet Zest exultantly answered and once again began to use her soft breasts to scrub Basara’s body. &#039;&#039;Crap…&#039;&#039; That softness, is just too damn comfortable, and there are just only subtle differences from those others who would use their breasts to help Basara wash himself. Once again, Basara experienced just how unique the breasts of every person are. If his thinking were to go any further, his own rationality would be in danger -- in order to try to not set the national holiday or prime number&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Chinese language puns, referring to an erection&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;, Basara tried to scatter his focus.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ah~? Basara seems to be very calm…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[How boring]. When Sheera said that, Toujou Basara sighed:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I’m so very sorry… I’m starting to become used to these kinds of situations.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Arara, what shocking words, to be able to get used to a girl scrubbing you with her breasts…? You’ve become a hero at such a young age.&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Not the real hero in this story. The Hero of Youths, one who is able to ‘control’ his own libido&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eighty percent of it are the fruits of the labour of your daughter…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Up to now, both Yuki and Mio who had a Master-Servant Contract with Basara had often used their breasts to scrub his body, thanks to Maria’s ‘wonderful’ suggestions. In order to induce jealousy which would then activate the curse to send them into an aroused state, Maria too would also sometimes demonstrate for them to see; later, Kurumi too was also dragged into this activity -- the remaining twenty percent, belongs to the infirmary teacher Hasegawa who was an exception. It was only Hasegawa, who had not made a Master-Servant Contract with him and had no need to increase her battle potential, who was not dragged helplessly into this by Maria, and had willingly and voluntarily done that kind of thing with Basara. Just then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Please excuse me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Saying that from behind his back, Zest’s hands which had been embracing Basara’s abdomen suddenly descended, slipping under the towel wrapped around his waist.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-Hold on, Zest! I can wash that place myself!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I’m very sorry…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara’s suddenly screamed, causing Zest to hurriedly withdraw her hands from shock, but in that moment--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Don’t stop and continue, Zest.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A cold voice that could send chills sounded out within the warm bath. Though Basara wanted to retort with a [Stop joking around!] -- he wasn’t able to. Reason being, Sheera was releasing pressure that seemed impossible from her small loli body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Even if the other party wants to do it themselves, this is supposed to be a maidservants’ duty and reason for existence… &#039;&#039;&#039;Continue.&#039;&#039;&#039;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey --…Haven’t I already said that there is no need to?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Gulping, Basara then managed to force out some resistance, but--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Aren’t you just denying the reason for a maid’s existence, Basara, just like saying 『I don’t need you following me』? Speaking of which, you seem to be misunderstanding something…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera continued coldly:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It was my order for Zest to serve you. Zest is my maidservant, her master is not you, but me; If I order her to wash another male’s body, she will…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And then gave a cold laugh.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Even if she has to help wash those soldiers who would harass her, she will still do so if it is my order. That is the duty of a maid whose duty is to serve people.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Those words caused discomfort within his heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Cracking that kind of joke is just too cruel… If that happens, I wouldn&#039;t let Zest continue to be your maidservant.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But the thing is, you don’t have the authority to do so, Basara. You had handed Zest over for us to handle her which is why she is now my maidservant… And so, regarding her all, my word is absolute. The one who had created this result is you -- the decision you had made at the beginning.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara anxiously tried to form a rebuttal -- Basara had told Zest before that if anything happens, she can return to the Toujou Household anytime, as he had judged that she would be able to escape from the Demon Realm with her power. However, those words were just merely for Zest, and wasn’t approved by Sheera. Seeing Basara beginning to turn pale--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How selfish… Ignoring her life and death normally, and then suddenly wishing everyone to be happy when you see her.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera continued while making a caustic&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;sarcastic in a scathing and bitter way&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; smile:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t tell me -- you haven’t realised that Zest is isolated and helpless in this city?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara remained silent, as he did vaguely have that sort of feeling. Other than Sheera or Lucia, he had not seen anyone else in the city speak with Zest; while visiting the city areas, Noel also doesn’t seem to be familiar with Zest -- and from Noel’s personality, it might perhaps have been that way because of pressure from the higher-ups. For Zest who was part of the Current Demon Lord Faction to find a place for her in the Moderates, it really isn’t an easy task. Just then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--I would also like to remind you, that Zest’s position and situation would also very likely be going downhill some more.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera said something that can’t be ignored.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What do you mean?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you still not get it? No matter if Mio in the end decides to go with the wishes of either Ramsas or Klaus, that final decision will definitely cause resentment in the other party. Adding on that you had just stupidly went to argue with Ramsas saying that you won’t accept both sides’ wishes, would there still be anyone within the Moderates Faction that would still treat you as one of them?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If that’s the case--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Even if you all are able to safely make it back to the Human Realm… I believe it wouldn’t be difficult to guess who would be the one baring their fangs at you, right? After all, weren’t you the ones who asked us to handle Zest?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara said in a low voice, groaning. He had never thought about it -- that protesting for Mio would bring about the worsening of Zest’s circumstances. As Basara became speechless--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“All these are the results of the decisions you guys have made. The you right now, have no authority at all to stop Zest from doing anything… If you still want Zest to listen and obey you no matter what, and not let her be in danger of being tarnished by someone she wants to--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera giggled some more, and then continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Basara -- you must become her master, make her into a thing of yours.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I, become Zest’s master…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara turned to look at Zest, only to see Zest slowly raise her lowered head, her eyes meeting with Basara’s. There was no signs of rejecting Basara at all in her eyes -- but rather, it was as if hoping what Sheera said will turn into reality. However--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Isn’t the Master-Servant Contract magic only usable on the night of a full moon…? There’s still a very long time before the next full moon comes.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara… So in the end you are not opposed to making a Master-Servant Contract with Zest?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Only if -- Zest herself agrees to it, then I will have no opposition.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara directly gave his affirmation to Sheera, because the decision to make a Master-Servant Contract with Zest -- that decision, was already made long ago in his heart, from before Basara entered the Demon Realm.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At those words, Zest stared at him in shock. Then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara, then I would say that there’s no problems at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The restriction of a full moon, only exists when the magic is used in the Human Realm… The Master-Servant Contract is pretty commonplace within the Demon Realm, so it can be used anytime. Since everyone already knows that I’m casual, bold, and unconstrained, even Ramsas and Klaus likely wouldn’t say anything if I were to use the Master-Servant magic to make you Zest’s master.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……I see.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With Sheera’s explanation, Basara murmured his understanding of that, and also understood why Sheera’s attitude towards him had changed suddenly. Zest’s position and circumstances, must be in a much bigger danger than what Basara had thought. That’s why--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Is this the only chance?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now -- Basara is standing at the intersection to decide if he really has the power to be able to protect Zest, but the situation isn’t really 「No Problems at all」 like Sheera said. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Zest… Let me ask you first, are you really willing to have a Master-Servant Contract with me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thus, Basara ask Zest who was before him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-This isn’t something that can be selfishly decided by me alone, I would still need the approval of Mio-sama and the others.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Towards Zest who replied with her head lowered while biting her lower lip, Toujou Basara continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--I have already obtained their approval for this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eh--! …?&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest raised her head from the shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We have already discussed this matter before we had come here. If it was deemed that there is a need to, I will bring you back together with me -- and they gave their approval.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Also&#039;&#039;--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&#039;&#039;They&#039;&#039; -- of course includes Mio.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Mio-sama she…? …Is it - really the truth?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara then put on a smile, and said to the dumbfounded Zest:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It’s the truth. It exactly because that’s the kind of person she is, that’s become the reason why I will protect her no matter what… So if you are willing to, I hope that you can help me in protecting her -- protecting my proud and arrogant little sister, Zest.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Please.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If you are willing to help me in protecting her… I too will also protect you with my all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Finishing, Toujou Basara gazed at Zest sincerely. After a long period of silence--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………I refuse.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara heard it -- Zest’s extremely soft voice saying out her rejection.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thus, [I see], those words came to Basara’s mouth -- but they never made it out of his mouth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Reason being, Zest hasn’t finished speaking. Those are, her feelings that have always been suppressed up till now.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I too want to protect Mio-sama, but… I do not want Basara to be protecting me, or else it would make the Master-Servant Contract meaningless. I wish to become your maidservant, to truly become your subordinate… to live for you only, and go through happy and tough times together.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Zest…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest poured out her own thoughts, and after Basara said her name--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please, Basara… Please allow me to remain by your side forever!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She pressed herself against Basara’s chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To which Basara whispered into her ear: [Yes.] -- his own choice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Sheera, looks like I’ll be troubling you once again.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment he finished his sentence, a magic circle opened up beneath them on the bath’s floor in order to let Basara and Zest make the Master-Servant Contract.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Thank goodness that the efforts I spent on preparing these won’t go to waste.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As if knowing that this would happen, that small young and glamorous succubus smiled, and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If you want it to be like Mio’s and Yuki’s, the Contract would need to be made through a succubus’s power.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And at the same time, a magic circle appeared on the back of Basara’s hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that -- there was no need to say&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;had the urge to use the word [narrate] instead&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; what came after that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;”------“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“------“&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara stretched his right hand towards Zest, who respectfully kneeled and received the palm -- and lightly kissed the magic circle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara and Zest were then immediately enveloped by the light indicating that the Contract has been completed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…With that…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest is now finally Basara’s subordinate, but for the question of whether he is able to be able to protect Zest, it still depended on whether his good fortune will last. Feeling the weight of the responsibility on him increasing, Basara raised Zest’s hand to aid her in standing up. It was then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ya--Fuaaaahhhhh!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest gave a cutesy scream, and limply remained attached to Basara. Taking a closer look, the collar-like markings on Zest’s throat showing the activation of the curse could be seen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The unbelievable amounts of pleasure, caused Zest’s whole body to tremble while she was in Basara’s arms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…S-So this is…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although it was somewhat painful, the pleasure that was stronger continued flowing out from the depths of Zest’s body. Within the fresh numbness and aches, Zest is now currently experiencing her indescribable first experience. This sweetness that she is experiencing right now -- so this is the happiness that belongs solely to women. Just then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-Why…? Didn’t making the Contract go smoothly?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara had questions, while holding Zest within his arms. This development seemed exactly just like the developments that happened during the contract making with both Yuki and Mio. However, Zest had indeed kissed that magic circle before it disappeared unlike Mio and Yuki -- in fact, Zest herself too doesn’t know why things had turned out like this.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara… So it turned out like this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apparently this was also beyond what Sheera had expected.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I would say that this would be that although you said that there’s no problem, deep within Zest’s heart, she is worried that she would cause you unneeded trouble now that she’s your subordinate, which had activated the curse.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah--…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The reason why Zest harboured guilt, turned Basara speechless.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! …I-I’m very very sorry…I have no intention of doubting your words… Aaaoo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although she was on the verge of crying, Zest still continued trying to quell the anger she thought Basara must be feeling while gasping heavily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Basara-ya, there’s something that I have to reveal… Although my current power is far from the levels during my prime, my succubus powers are still stronger than Maria’s. So, the effects of the aphrodisiac curse are very likely to be much stronger than that of Yuki’s and Mio’s.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes, I can see that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara then flared up while hugging Zest in his arms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t panic… Zest’s powers are above Mio and the others, and the guilt she has probably isn’t really deep, so she’ll probably be able to take it longer than them.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that supposed to be consolation? Anyway, thanks for providing that piece of information.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara sighed, and laid Zest on the floor of the bath.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! …Basa-ra…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As this was her first time experiencing pleasure, Zest had no idea how she should take it, so she could only just look at Basara in a daze.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Zest, please bear with it a little longer. I will soon make you yield, and free you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thus -- Toujou Basara said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Accept me -- as your Master.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Those words are just what Zest wanted to hear -- so, despite the overwhelming pleasure shaking her body--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Yes, Master Basara!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest gave a small smile and stretched out her hands, and said from the very bottom of her heart:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Zest is Master Basara’s maidservant… Please make everyone remember that clearly!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And so Basara nodded -- and silently, his hands went towards Zest’s breasts.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Ah…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not just Zolgear, that body part which no male has ever touched before -- in those days after leaving Basara&#039;s side, those days where her endless yearning for him and dreaming about being at his mercy caused changes within her body, turning her breasts into an alluring size. That very evening, when those very breasts were about to be encroached on by the city guards, Basara had stopped them which meant that he had protected her chastity -- that was the first time Basara had protected her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Ah ha…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hence, with the moment of Basara finally caressing those breasts of hers finally arriving, Zest’s heart was beating in happiness. Just seeing his hand getting closer and closer -- raised her desires and anticipation higher and higher.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And then, Basara began caress those plump and obscene breasts of hers -- and it was in that very moment--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;……..!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The aftermath of her breasts being caressed for the first time, was a body-shaking female climax. It was then, Zest’s subjugation had begun.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her eyes rolling and her memories now in short bits and pieces, Zest then slowly regained her normal vision, and upon seeing Basara still at her side--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…How moving, Master Basara and I are finally…!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--In the past, Zest had witnessed the scene where Basara and Yuki made the Master-Servant Contract, and also the scene where Basara, Yuki, Mio and Maria had taken a bath together in the Toujou Residences’ bathroom. Back then, she had secretly decided. That if she were to one day be subjugated by Basara, she wanted it to happen in a bathroom. That very wish had now come true, and Zest kept shouting Basara’s name, wanting to share the happiness she felt; however, since Basara wanted to subjugate Zest as soon as possible, the caresses that were originally gentle quickly became stronger--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Aahh! Yaaah! Fuuaa-aahhaaa…. Yaa-aaaahh! …Haaaaaaaaaaaaaaahhhhhhhhhhhhhhh♥”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The caresses on Zest’s breasts very quickly turned wild, allowing room for only gasps and the pleasure filling up every pore of her body, her burning desires eventually turned her brown-coloured flesh into a wet and bright lewd colour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And as if wanting to express the pleasure she felt, the twisting and quivering of her body continued, and she let out gasps of lewdness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…My goodness… My breasts has already become so salacious&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;having or conveying undue or indecent interest in sexual matters&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara’s fingers dug into the flesh, rapidly kneading Zest’s breasts into various lewd shapes -- emphasising its softness to none other than Zest herself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Lewd…&#039;&#039; The fact that Basara is having his way with her breasts, as well as the pleasure resulted from that, are lewd. Being seen by Basara in this state, further intensified the pleasant feeling within her. Soon, Zest saw the tips of her breasts begin to get excited from the pleasure, swelling up and becoming hard. As her breasts melted into pleasure, that very part became harder and harder.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As Basara kneaded Zest’s breasts, those extremely sensitive tips, were then rubbed in between his thumb and forefinger. It was in that very moment--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ya-- Fuuaaaaaaahhhhhhhhh♥”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Another orgasm at a level where the first one could never compare to, caused Zest’s body to spasm; arching her back and sticking out her butt, her waist to hips were raised uncontrollably. Basara’s right hand then went around Zest’s waist, and lifted her up. By the time she felt a floating sensation, Basara was already face to face with her straddling his crotch.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
By the time she realised that, one of tips of her breasts were already being sucked in his mouth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah--Aahh…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although something happened and her thoughts hadn’t caught up to what she was feeling, Zest’s femininity told her that she too also needed to start moving. And so, Zest’s hands went around Basara’s neck, and she put some force into the legs around his waist -- at the same time, Basara also disappeared from her sights. All of a sudden, she felt some unrest from the thought that he might have cast her aside.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But that was wrong, as Basara was still in front of her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--It was the mirror on the ceiling of the bath that had confirmed that fact.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While orgasming, Zest’s eyes then met with the her in that mirror.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…This is, me…?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What the reflection of the mirror showed, is not the cold and frosty Zest she was in the past, but gasping from the tremendous climaxes with a lewd smile -- it was just simply a girl intoxicated in pleasure.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--However, she didn’t mind, just how lewd her own expression is. Compared to this, Basara sucking her breasts and his hands relentlessly kneading her butt -- the pleasure brought about from those sensations are much more important.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ya,aahh… Ah! W-Why…is, my body, getting hotter and, hotter… Fuaahhh!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Despite climaxing continuously, the curse showed no signs of going away. Her upper body arching to its limit again due to another orgasm, what vision imperceptibly&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;so slight, gradual, or subtle as not to be perceived&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;  became that of what is behind her now.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Ah…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Over there in her sights, is Sheera. She was looking at the scene of Zest lewdly orgasming, with a coquettish&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;behaving in such a way as to suggest a playful sexual attraction; flirtatious&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; smile that didn’t match her young appearance; her lips seemed have said something and after fidgeting a bit, she then went towards the entrance of the bath.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Sheera-sama…?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Is she going to leave before witnessing the end of Zest being subjugated by Basara? With her awareness being broken up by the waves of pleasure, Zest couldn’t understand what Sheera had just said, it was as if like the strong sensations had paralysed her sense of hearing. However -- Zest found out the answers very quickly. Gripping her shoulders, Basara then pulled her towards him, making her sit up straight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, the lips of Basara’s mouth in front of Zest’s eyes started moving.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…………?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest didn’t know how to read lips.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But she was able to forcibly make out the words [I’m] and [ear].&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that -- Basara’s lips began to slowly near her ear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Master Basara, are you…?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara had already kneaded her breasts and butt out of proportions, so in that moment, she couldn’t understand just what Basara was going to do.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And in the next moment, Zest realised a truth and an answer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seems that the ears are full of erogenous zones -- and that, &#039;&#039;&#039;that area&#039;&#039;&#039; is her weak spot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 5===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Um, Basara, are you alright?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maidservant Noel shouted out at the large bath for male guests’ use.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She had been asked by Mio and the other to check on Basara since he still hasn’t returned for a long time after entering the bath.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The basket in the changing room contained not only Basara’s clothes, but also Zest’s and Sheera’s clothes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They all are indeed inside the bath, but could the reason why they were taking so long--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;--Did they faint in the bath from soaking too long?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Should I go inside to check?&#039;&#039; As Noel became indecisive--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;----------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt; ♥』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest’s scream came from inside the bath.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! --A-Are you alright…--!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rushing into the bathing area not knowing what happened -- she then saw it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The scene of Zest’s ear in Basara&#039;s mouth, and Zest experiencing a massive climax. Her waist and hips trembled violently, shaking her large pleasure-filled breasts about.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ah…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Noel’s legs became weak, and she collapsed onto the floor. Just then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--My my, this girl really knows how to pick a great time to come.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A giggling voice came from her side, and a pair of hands covered her eyes from behind her. As if her thoughts were seen through, she then heard someone whispering into her ear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『However, it would be for the best if you forget what you saw here. You are to immediately return to the room Mio and the others are and tell them that Basara will not be returning tonight and to not worry -- do you understand? 』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……………Yes.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rapidly nodding her head, Noel then followed the instructions and left the bath.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To head towards the room Mio and the rest are in -- and to tell them that Basara will not be returning for the night.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After successfully sending Noel off,&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright… No one will be coming in to disturb us anymore.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera giggled, and--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Um, Sheera.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Basara said while hugging Zest:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You were right, about Zest’s weak spot being her ear… Thank you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the neck area of Zest who had already lost consciousness after Basara bit her ear, the markings of the curse has already vanished. However--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara, Basara… Isn’t it too early to be thanking me?” &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What do you mean…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera then said to Basara who began to feel doubt:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What you did just now, was merely to use pleasure to make Zest unconscious, a measure used in emergencies. Didn’t she activate the curse due to being worried over causing you problems as your subordinate? Unless you managed to make her really feel 『I am not causing trouble for Master Basara』 and 『I am able to give my assistance to Master Basara』, the curse will activate again when she regains consciousness and becomes stable.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then -- what I did just now--“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry… Your efforts have not gone to waste.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera then came to where the two of them were, and touched Zest’s cheeks--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, Zest… Time to wake up.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After gently saying that, Zest then opened her eyes slowly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Ah…Sheera-sama…I…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you remember? You had fainted partway while you were serving Basara, so now it’s for the best if you continue… Do you not want to be a bother to Basara? Then you better assist him well, and show that to him.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Master Basara… A bother…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Saying so with confusion in her eyes, the markings then appeared once more on her throat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sheera, you…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing the curse of the Master-Servant Contract activating and thus started to panic, Sheera raised her hand to stop Basara and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry… Right now Zest is calm from the tremendous climaxes she had since her memories aren’t clear, so her guilt isn’t that strong. What you have to do now, is to help her out from this situation. The curse of the Master-Servant Contract has the purpose of reminding the subordinate to be loyal to the Master, so no matter how muddled her memories are, she would still remember the reason for the activation of the curse. Hence, before she starts blaming herself when she completely regains her calm, you have to drill into her the knowledge that her presence and existence will not be harmful but beneficial to you, to give her the confidence to remain by your side as your subordinate.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;After all--&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The tipsy state she is in right now will make it easy for her to reveal her true thoughts. If you were to accomplish that, the curse will no longer activate when she regains her calm after that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the only way to make Zest to be able to continue living as Basara’s subordinate.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! ……--I understand.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Finally, Basara gave his agreement after thinking over it, and so--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Come, Zest… hurry up and serve Basara, and prove that you are able to help him.”&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Sheera’s line&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Yes…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To be able to help him, you must be able to do some meaningful things to be able to have pride in being his subordinate… So, hurry up and go serve Basara, he’s waiting for you.”&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Sheera’s line too&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest nodded, and then wrapped her hands around Basara’s neck.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Master Basara--…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With a confused and alluring smile, she then pressed against Basara’s lips, with her own lips.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basking in the sweet warmth welling up within her in the aftertaste of her climaxes, Zest kissed Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Because as Basara’s subordinate, Zest felt that she must be willing to sacrifice her all for him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Nn… Oi, Zest… Mnn?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest drunkenly kissed the misunderstanding Basara even stronger, and just then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Basara, you should just let Zest do as she please… She had given up her first kiss to you since she thought that will make you happy, so how could you as the master to reciprocate her feelings?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Sheera said that as if scolding him--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara’s body twitched, and he then pulled Zest into his arms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then -- the time to turn them into true Master and Subordinate, began, like as if they were lovers.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--However, it began with just Zest one-sidedly serving Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Despite Zest using her obscene and lewd breasts to continually scrub Basara’s body, he showed no resistance at all. However, this made Zest worried.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
「…Master Basara, please use my body to tell me, just what do I have to do in order to satisfy you. 」&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Giving Basara a kiss as if sending a plea, it appeared that her thoughts had reached Basara’s heart. He then began making demands for her –from that moment onwards, Zest began to experience countless numbers of orgasms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Nibbling her ear while massaging her breast, and her butt – all these made Zest become surprised at just how easily she can be overwhelmed by pleasure, which had caused her to expose her intoxicated and drunk state induced by her orgasms to Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In that regard&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;the revelation of that state in the previous paragraph&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;, Zest was not an exception. Reason being that no matter how embarrassed the person became, it will still be insignificant against the bliss and pleasure she experienced. Just as the minute hand of the clock embedded into the wall of the bath finished one round—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haah… Nn, chii, chiiiii… Aaahh! Master Basara… Nnnnfff…lyaaaa…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The kiss between Zest and Basara, basically turned into intense intertwining of tongues and pooling of saliva.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hands massaging her breasts from behind her back, Zest had twisted her body back to kiss – although the posture brought about some discomfort, it was completely insignificant against the tremendous intense bliss and pleasure Basara gave her. Zest’s instincts as a woman were still steadily rising, plunging her into madness. With all signs of morality and discipline and self-control gone from her eyes—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Master Basara, suck me more… please make Zest’s breasts become as sensitive as Mio-sama’s…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest shook her breasts around like a spoiled child, to which Basara immediately granted her request. Making Zest sit on his thighs facing him, he began kneading her butt with his hands and latched his lips onto that pair stiff tips of her breasts, and loudly sucked it in. Faced with a simultaneous pincer attack—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yaah! Aahh… Fuuu! Nnnhh… Nn-nnuu… Nnnaaaa♥”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest wriggled around on his thighs, squirming around intoxicatedly, drunk on the pleasure bestowed on her by her Master’s forceful caresses. Since not long ago, something deep within her lower abdomen has already melted into heat, as if it was already ready to cause her to burn up anytime; her wet pleasure-drenched sensitive spot had already begun to pour out lewd juices, causing those juices to continuously flow down her thighs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was twerking her hips on a male’s thighs – as if competing for the top contender for the world’s most lewd lap dance. Zest’s lowered sight caught on to just how crazily she was moving her hips about, and it was then she noticed – Basara had also &#039;&#039;grown up&#039;&#039; due to a male’s reaction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Master Basara, because of me, you had already become so…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For someone like her to be able to make Basara become this excited – this fact, made Zest with her already-very-sensitive body even more excited; with her blazing flames of passion, large amounts of saliva suddenly built-up in her mouth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After swallowing that saliva back down in one gulp—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Master Basara… Ah…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest slowly slipped down off Basara’s thighs, and knelt down before his waist.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A subordinate who only cared about her own indulgence in pleasure ad neglected her master’s satisfaction has got no worth to exist. That was the reason why she then slowly raised her eyes to look at Basara, to make a request to Basara with her wet eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara did not say anything—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;--------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And gently stroked her head with his hand with a calm expression&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;was supposed to be [peaceful expression], but it didn’t seem to fit&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; on his face.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That was enough. Even without any words, that was enough to let Zest understand that Basara has given her his clearance.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--Thus using her mouth, Zest began to serve Basara’s private area.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And what happened after that, was just ecstatic – causing Zest to close her eyes, and gathered all of her consciousness into her mouth and tongue that was being used to serve Basara. Later after that—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;-----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;Eh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest opened her eyes, and realised that both she and Basara were lying on the floor of the bath with their legs entangled together.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The two of them were also stark naked. Basara’s face was buried within Zest’s breasts, breathing normally.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Just what exactly happened?&#039;&#039; – Zest was of course stunned&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;stunned/shocked&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;, and just then—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—Are you awake, Zest?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A very leisurely voice came over to her. Turning around to look, she saw Sheera sitting at the edge of the bath.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sheera-sama, I…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You probably should still remember – no matter how intoxicated with pleasure you’ve become, you will still definitely remember the situation when the curse of the Master-Servant Contract activated.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…………Ah.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Those words vividly awakened Zest’s memories from not too long ago. Although Basara’s &#039;&#039;male pheromones&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;referring to something that has been discharged&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; made her feel dizzy, the fact that she currently was still latched onto Basara’s &#039;&#039;avatar&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;male private part&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;still remains.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『Nnhh… Nnfuu, fuuu, lyuu, chuu… Master Basara♥Hapuuf… Ann, chuu…nnn… Haafff, chuu…Puuuff…yeuu…nnaa… Ah-pchh…』&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;various and lots of sound effect text that I have no idea how to put into English. Basically, I tried partially improvising here, so accuracy can’t be guaranteed&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Using her tongue to carefully entangle it, Zest intricately served it with her mouth, and Basara’s stiff &#039;&#039;avatar&#039;&#039; also twitched excitedly in her mouth – in order to satisfy Basara even more, the intoxicated Zest decided to go with trial and error, to search for a way that Basara would like.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『Nnn… Aahh… Aaoo, Master, Basara… Haahh… Aaahh… Fuahh♥』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s right – not only using her mouth, Zest also utilised her large full breasts later on; completely enveloping Basara’s &#039;&#039;avatar&#039;&#039;, she had also completely immersed herself into serving Basara with her own breasts.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was different from when Basara sucked on them – with the effects of friction and other things due to Zest’s breasts gripping onto it, lewd sounds sounded out with every single movement her breasts made. The joy from serving Basara, combined with the immorality from wantonly&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;sexually lawless or unrestrained; loose; lascivious; lewd: wanton behavior&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; rubbing &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039; with her breasts, inextricably&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;incapable of being disentangled, undone, loosed, or solved&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; raised Zest’s lust even higher.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I--…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest finally remembered the ecstasy she had felt when she and Basara had finally met again. She then forcefully pushed the Basara attempting to &#039;&#039;fire&#039;&#039; onto her breasts to the floor of the bath, and after clasping her arms around his waist, she pushed herself against him – plunging Basara’s &#039;&#039;avatar&#039;&#039; into her mouth once again.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--After that, that major historical event replayed itself vividly in Zest’s mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Making her remember – the events of Basara’s hot torrents&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;ejaculate; what comes out during ejaculation&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; flooding her, as well as--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
(…Master Basara, Master Basara, Master Basara…♥)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her swallowing it all, while calling his name countless times in her heart. With every movement she had made with her head, that viscous pleasure had poured even more of itself into her body – just that was already more than enough to bring her up to a continuous string of climaxes, plunging her whole body into overwhelming bliss, causing every single part of her to shake. At the end, as all of &#039;&#039;&#039;that&#039;&#039;&#039; flowed past Zest’s throat--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ah…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Remembering what had happened after that, a cold chill suddenly assaulted her body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—have you remembered it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As if seeing through Zest’s emotions, Sheera smiled and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You were very fierce and abrupt when you lost yourself in playing… As if this being your first time isn’t enough, you had kept harassing Basara non-stop – doing &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039; three times with your mouth, and two times with your breasts in between &#039;&#039;that&#039;&#039; – I can see that you have a really bright future ahead of you. Basara must have already accumulated a lot of &#039;&#039;damage&#039;&#039; – be thankful that you have such a strong master, okay?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………………Yes.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While embarrassed to the point of wanting to make herself disappear, Zest nodded. Even if it was while being plunged into total bliss, lusting for Basara like she had just did is just too embarrassing for her to face. But she still remembered with every eruption&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;ejaculation&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; Basara had made on Zest’s breasts and in her mouth, he would also cry out her name.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To show that he also wanted her&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;[lusted for her] is the exact translation, but might not have been the best to use. Double meaning here: [To lust for her] and [To accept her as a subordinate/servant]&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;. That’s why--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest felt her neck – there were no signs of the collar markings of the Master-Servant Contract’s curse, as well as any lingering signs of the sweet aphrodisiac. In other words, that is the best evidence to show that she had served him well and had fulfilled her responsibility of serving Basara – that’s why, she could no longer hold &#039;&#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039;&#039; back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before the gap in her memories, what she had whispered while her legs and Basara’s were entangled:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…I really did it. I finally became Master Basara’s subordinate – and family.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cuddling against the sleeping face of her very much cherished Basara, Zest whispered it again. Then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Congratulations on being reborn, Zest… As a precaution, please answer my question first.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera then continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—towards becoming Basara’s subordinate and being by his side, do you still harbour any doubt?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[None at all.] While trying to hold back her tears, Zest shook her head to answer her former master’s question.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With no more guilt towards becoming Basara’s subordinate – all that’s left in her is purely bliss.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Translator&#039;s Notes and References==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;references/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
{{SimpleNav}}&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;/noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>112.201.117.48</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>http://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Shinmai_Maou_no_Keiyakusha:Volume_5_Chapter_3&amp;diff=564015</id>
		<title>Shinmai Maou no Keiyakusha:Volume 5 Chapter 3</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="http://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Shinmai_Maou_no_Keiyakusha:Volume_5_Chapter_3&amp;diff=564015"/>
		<updated>2020-07-28T15:24:22Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;112.201.117.48: /* Part 4 */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;==Chapter 3: A New Master-Servant Contract==&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 1=== &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After a long period of time, the meeting with the Council ended.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart returned to his office, summoned a few of his trusted subordinates and notified them of the future goals requested by the Council, as well as the methods requested to achieve them. This space is filled with high-class furnishings and covered by a thick red carpet, a style that seemed befitting that of a Demon Lord’s. After Leohart explained the general decision reached at the meeting—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—to put the recently excavated spirits into battle, and defeat the Moderates Faction – is it really true?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
First to speak up, was Leohart’s aide Balthier.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can’t take it anymore… Although this is not the first time that genius Council ordered us to risk our lives, it’s too much of a headache this time…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—Luca, what’s the condition of the spirits?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The one Leohart directed his question to, is a young demon holding onto a file.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I’m very sorry… As like yesterday’s report, we managed to successfully release the seal on them, but—“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The youth called Luca lowered his eyes apologetically.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We ran into some problems when attempting to make the Master-Servant Contract with them, so we would need more time to do it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just then, a warm hand rested on Luca’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t be sad about it… After all, those spirits are relics from the Demon-God War, so being able to establish a Contact with it is already amazing, don’t look down on yourself.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gardo…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the blury male demon trying to comfort him, Luca raised his tearful eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gardo’s right, there’s nothing to blame yourself over… no need to act with undue haste.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart then said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well then – according to your estimates, how long do you need to establish a Master-Servant Contract with them?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Four days… No, two days, I will accomplish it in two days!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t I just tell you not to be too hasty… Much less sleep, you didn’t manage to get any rest these few days, right? You’re the only one able to deal with those spirits, so it’ll be bad if you get tired. This concerns our important fight – no sentimental emotions are allowed at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If your majesty says so, then I better prepare the spirits as soon as possible. No problems at all… Even if I collapse, there are many scholars proficient with ancient technology in this city.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Luca… Your majesty Leohart didn’t mean that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eh…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Balthier pointed out with a bitter smile, causing Luca to widen his round eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Indeed, there are many scholars or professors familiar with ancient technology and weapons in this city, however, the only one Leohart can trust unconditionally is you alone, Luca.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With Gardo’s explanation, Balthier also nodded and said: [That&#039;s right]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It’s great that you don’t want to disappoint your deadlines and responsibilities – although you are still young, and as one of those closest to your majesty Leohart, I trust that you are able to understand when your majesty Leohart is concerned for your health?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With Balthier’s edging, Luca finally understood what they are getting at.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……I’m sorry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No need to apologise. Everyone here knows clearly that you are giving your all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart then said while looking at the remorseful Luca with serious eyes:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“As my aide, I will not permit half-assed work and results. I will ask you once more, Luca – under a load where you can withstand, how long will you need to establish the Master-Servant Contract with the spirits?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Three, please give me three days. I will establish the Master-Servant Contract with the spirits in three days! In that time, I will also finish repairs and adjustments to their cores, and they will be ready for battle after doing some simple tests when the Contract is established.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I understand, I will trust your judgement then…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hearing Leohart’s words, Luca then replied with a bright smile: [Yes!]. Gardo then roughly stroked his head, making him shout in retaliation: [Geez! Don’t treat me like a kid!] &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Watching the interaction between Gardo and Luca—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…The spirits are settled, and next is—&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart began thinking about the other problem.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then again – just how are we supposed to materialise the ridiculous order to attack from the Council?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just then, a bitter smile appeared on Balthier’s straight face while he sighed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Although the Moderate Faction’s power and influence is nowhere near as great as in their heyday…there are still many in various parts of the Demon Realm that still hold much attachment for Wilbert. In terms of battle prowess, we are undoubtedly above the Moderates Faction -- so we have to find a justifiable 『Nominal』&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;名目: used to describe a [standard]. E.g. the nominal currency exchange rate&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; to avoid civilians protesting in the various districts.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was right. Carelessly attacking the Moderates Faction will be seen as a one-sided slaughter, inviting criticism.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A war is not purely about a battle of strength –converted political interests are deeply entangled with it. If someone with a ulterior motive were to get a chance at all – the other factions and powers that have been only observing to this day would suddenly rise in power.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Abhorrent old thieves.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Those high-class demons who have lived for a very long time and are among the Council’s ranks, no longer see anyone else as one of their kind; the civilians to them are nothing more than entertainment, the civilians’ lives does not matter at all, only their own appeasement matters. That’s why, they must be thoroughly eliminated.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Also.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart deeply believed, that only he and his comrades will be able to accomplish that big task.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hence, he had to obey the Council for now in order to preserve his position as the Demon Lord, but that didn’t mean that he had to let them have all they want.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as Leohart began to think deeply about the Nominal—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—Well, I do have a reason to make people sit by quietly and watch us attack the Moderates Faction.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Someone who had also answered to the summon but yet had remained quiet until now spoke.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That someone is Naruse Mio’s new observer after Zolgear stirred up some problems.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Someone who had entered the Human Realm with the alias Takigawa Yahiro, a youth attending the same school as Naruse Mio.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…And what would it be, Lars?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart asked, raising an eyebrow, to which Lars answered blatantly:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wilbert’s daughter – Naruse Mio, is currently within the Demon Realm.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—Are you for real?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Shrugging to Balthier who widened his eyes in disbelief, Lars answered:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What I said is indeed the truth… After Wilbert’s demise, the Moderates Faction has come to a standstill over the problem of insufficient battle potential. After those people wrecked their brains over this, their solution is to bring Naruse Mio to the Demon Realm. Although it is unclear if they will legimately crown her as a new Demon Lord or extract the power she inherited… they will want to make use of her to regain some of their former glory.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hence—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hence – we just have to take advantage of their way of thinking. The Moderates Faction wants to make use of Wilbert’s daughter and her inherited power to rule over the Demon Realm once again – we should be able to shut the other factions in the Demon Realm if we were to say that we dispatched our forces in response to their rebellion.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see… If what you say is the truth, it is indeed a reason justifiable enough to send out our troops.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hearing Leohart say so--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara, Your Majesty -- you don’t trust what your aide says?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lars replied playfully. In reply to the sarcasm from his fellow comrade from the previous war--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lars, there’s still us here -- stop using that disgusting tone.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright alright… So, do you not trust me, Leohart? That piece of information is supposed to be highly classified and even the people within the Moderates Faction don&#039;t know about it, so it’s not your fault if you doubt me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In reply to the smiling Lars, Leohart said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, I believe you -- you are a spy sent here by the Moderates Faction, so it’s normal for you to receive classified information.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart already knew long ago that Lars is a spy sent by the Moderates Faction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
How long ago? --The answer is, right from the start. Leohart had took in Lars while knowing clearly of its consequences. And Lars had accepted becoming Leohart’s subordinate while knowing clearly of what consequences that would bring. Lars’s current identity within the Current Demon Lord Faction, is that he is a newbie to the Current Demon Lord Faction who had defected from the Moderates Faction; as to the Moderates Faction, he is playing the role of a spy who successfully infiltrated the enemy’s camp. That, is the mask that Lars had voluntarily put on.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And right now -- the only ones who know of Lars’s true identity, are the few present in the room.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Is this really fine, Lars?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart then asked:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You are not only a spy sent from the Moderates Faction, but also Naruse Mio’s protector. To you who had grew up under education from the Moderates Faction, shouldn&#039;t Wilbert be your most admired person?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes, it is -- all that is already past me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[After all], Lars continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I have already personally ended Zolgear’s life, avenging my brothers… I have no more obligation left to do anything for the Moderates Faction.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s right -- it was Lars himself who told the people in this room that he ended Zolgear’s life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The reason that Leohart had sent Balthier to investigate when Zolgear’s psionic response disappeared, is because an agreement was already made with Lars beforehand. Leohart’s goal is to wipe out the old bastards of the Council -- Zolgear who was one of them had killed many who were like brothers and sisters to Lars; thus the two of them agreed that when the chance comes, Lars will personally end Zolgear’s life. Hence, when Zolgear’s psionic response disappeared, Leohart’s first guess was that Lars had successfully completed his revenge -- and had then received confirmation from him himself. Thus--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I’ve told you before, that from now onwards, I will continue to help you get rid of those leeches -- those scum no different from Zolgear, so don’t worry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There were no signs of lying at all in Lars’s words, but--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…That’s not set in stone.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart then continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lars… The reason you gave your assistance to me up till now, wasn’t it because that I, who wanted to kill those scum, could help you to personally kill Zolgear? Now that you had accomplished your objective -- isn’t it right that you have no further obligation to provide anymore assistance?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Right&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In point of fact -- you had chosen Jin Toujou’s son to work with to kill Zolgear, not me. So, shouldn’t it be natural for you to continue working with him?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haven’t I told you already? I didn’t choose him because he is better than you…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lars sighed again, and continued in a low voice:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The reason was -- if I had continued to observe and do nothing, Toujou Basara might have very well killed Zolgear himself, putting to waste my years of effort and plotting. So I had no choice but to work with him to be able to personally kill Zolgear, that’s simply all that is to it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Jin Toujou’s son has that much power?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Balthier asked doubtfully:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Marquis&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;a nobleman ranking above a count and below a duke.&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; Zolgear might have been old, but that person who had been known as 『Sword King』 was fairly powerful; and yet the youth called Toujou Basara… From your reports, he doesn’t seem to have enough power to be able to defeat Zolgear, right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Affirmative. That person’s power is indeed below that of Zolgear’s. But I think…even without my help, he would still be able to rescue Naruse Mio and defeat Zolgear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lars’ seriousness, caused the others to become silent, and then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then again -- an opportunity to personally kill Zolgear came to me just like that, so how could I possibly let it go?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lars said with a bitter smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, since that is the case, no need for anymore further speculation. Don’t worry anymore, when the Great War ended, someone had asked me to help take good care of you”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ? Just who would even do tha--“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--That would be Your Highness Riara.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lars’s answer--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Onee-sama…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart showed surprise.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Who could possibly reject her request when being asked by that smiling face? If there’s a need, we could just send the spirits I brought along with me to defeat the Moderates Faction; on the other hand, if you still want me to leave being unable to trust me, I will just obediently leave.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No need to do any of that, there will be no need for you to leave.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At Lars’s suggestions, Balthier sighed and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We have already known you for so many years since the Great War, of course I believe you -- I only fear that you would return to the Moderates Faction should you leave or take the spirits along with you. Both me and your majesty Leohart knows too well just how troublesome of a person you can be.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara, is that so?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As Lars shrugged his shoulders with a [Ah]--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Then hand the spirits over to me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A bulky figure said with a low voice -- Gardo.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“As an aide, Balthier would want to avoid leaving Leohart’s side. And since Lars is not an option, I am the only one left.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……I’m sorry, Gardo.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart lowered his eyes, and then said to the older male demon:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The one who was originally supposed to be the Demon Lord was you -- no, you&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;A more respectful version of calling someone is used here&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From the same generation of high-class demons as Leohart, Gardo’s powers and bloodline was seen to be the most suitable for the throne by the old elders not from the Council, but from the Conservative Faction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, in the process of changing the Conservative and Radicals Factions’ image that now is a new era within the Demon Realm, the old elders from the Council still chose Leohart to be on the throne.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--And Gardo had no choice but to follow their decision.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And Gardo voluntarily chose to be a subordinate of the new Demon Lord, becoming Leohart’s aide.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The edges of the lips of that selfless male curled into a smile, and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t mind it, I am also here to be a helping hand. I would of course be delighted to give my assistance to you, who wants to change the world where authority had completely fallen into the Council’s hands after Wilbert’s failed attempt to cleanse and change it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gardo…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Luca looked on worriedly, and Gardo once again patted his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“When Luca is done doing his stuff with the spirits, I will immediately head out to Wildart City with our troops -- is that decided?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course, and make sure that they can no longer do anything against us.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart nodded, and Balthier then supplemented:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I agree. If possible, deal with their leader Ramsas&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;kill&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;, and let none of them escape. He is Wilbert’s brother, and had gathered the support of many various civilians; if he is gone, the Moderates Faction will most likely collapse.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I understand -- what should I do about Wilbert’s daughter?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After pondering for a few seconds, Leohart gave a reply to Gardo in a calm voice:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Try to capture her alive. In order to obtain a power to make it possible for us to go against those old bastards in the Council, it would be for the best if we stick to the original plan and use the inherited Wilbert’s power effectively; That is something that is definitely worth us doing this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 2===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even after Ramsas had returned to the city, Mio and the rest were not brought back to that small cramped room.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It probably was to be expected. After all, it was a result of Klaus mediating.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The extravagant luxurious dinner atop the table in the luxurious dining room -- even that was assorted to all of their tastes of the food in the Human Realm, with careful and intricate seasoning and preparations -- Sheera and Klaus who was also at the table, as well as Zest and Noel who was responsible for serving them, even gave them detailed introductions for every single dish. Amongst the hospitality, Ramsas was not to be seen at the table throughout the dinner even when he was supposed to have returned to the city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--And an hour has already passed since they all had returned to their respective rooms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Accompanied by Yuki, Maria, and Kurumi, Naruse Mio appeared in a space filled with humidity and warm air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This space where the naked girls barely showed some decency, is the large bath for female guests.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This large bath filled with thin white steam, was carved from marble -- the grand and impressive facility, gave off the impression and feel of a luxurious high-class hotel or hostel.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Such amazing places to take a bath are rare. It’s a pity that Basara had to be absent from this.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Otherwise, they could just announce to the people in the city who they are.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Basara had rejected that idea while giving a bitter smile, saying that he didn’t want to provoke the people in the city for no reason, and Mio could only just give up on it. Now -- Mio is sitting on a chair by the wall at the washing area, preparing to wash herself, but--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Then, Mio-sama, please excuse me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Saying that from behind Mio’s back is Noel with only a towel wrapped around her. To the ones like Ramsas, she would be of no further use once Wilbert’s power within her is extracted -- but to the ones like Klaus who wished to crown her as a Demon Lord, Mio is the most important VIP they have; thus they even sent a group of people to serve them, from the flushing of the bath to the adjusting of the water’s temperature, to washing them; of course Mio and the others strongly rejected it saying that they wouldn’t be able to relax, but as the other party strongly insisted they receive the proper treatment -- they compromised, letting Noel who they had spent time with touring the downtown areas serve them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah… Sorry to trouble you, Noel.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Mio nodded, and Noel made a obeisance&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;a gesture expressing deferential respect, such as a bow or curtsy&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; with a [Yes]. Firstly using the warm water in the wooden barrel to wash herself, Noel then began washing Mio’s back while creating foam. The maids of the royals and noble were gentle in washing people in order to not damage the skin, and Noel was no different, but--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Eh! Ah…..aaaoo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When the slippery sensation moved across her back, Mio wasn’t able to stem her sexy moans.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I&#039;m only just washing your back… Mio-sama is sensitive? I did hear that Mio-sama had made a Master-Servant Contract with Basara using Maria’s powers, is this related to that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-Well, that…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Mio turned red with Noel’s teasing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Why, am I…!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the joy of being able to take a bath in another Realm, Mio forgot to prepare herself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--Since the time she had made the Master-Servant Contract with Basara, Mio’s sexiness had been developing with each and every time Basara subjugated her, and right now her body has already become incredibly sensitive; but even then, there was no problems at all while taking a bath in her own home. She could control how much force to use while bathing by herself. But there were many times she had to take a bath together with Basara and Yuki as a result of Maria&#039;s plots, and adding on the fact that she had experienced her body being thoroughly washed by Basara many times, she would occasionally accidentally let slip some of the reaction she had in those times.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Could it be that the reason you reduced the number of people serving you, was because you were afraid of people finding out about this? To tell the truth, there was no need for you to worry about that at all…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! …Any more of that, and I will drive you out.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Being glared at by Mio in embarrassment, Noel giggled and said: [I’m very sorry], and then once again began washing Mio quietly. Naturally, a maid wouldn’t just wash Mio’s back, but also her underarms, breasts, butts, hips -- all of that.&amp;quot; Noel scrubbed all of those parts.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! …Ah …Fu ……Ah …Ya …Ah!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Mio began biting her lips in desperation to endure it, but that wasn’t enough to stop her gasps and moans from escaping, and--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Don’t worry. All these, are completely incomparable to when Basara does it himself…!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s right. The techniques used were all completely different when Basara was playing with her body. He was always very bold yet cautious, with love and affection within his unyieldingness -- even if he was very rough, he would never let someone be in pain.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Noel wouldn’t be able to raise her lewd side like Basara did.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…If it was Basara instead, it might have been…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara’s big hands, Basara’s solid chest, Basara’s flair to deliver mindblowing pleasure, and especially Basara&#039;s warmth that relaxed her the most -- thinking about what he had done in the past, what Noel is doing in comparison gives her only slight embarrassment, itches, and some moans that she couldn’t stem; after all, Basara had washed her breasts, underarms, belly button, and even her butt before. Thus, Mio restored her calm and handed over her body to Noel’s washing, and after that came her long hair. Her combing, was just as comfortable at it being done in a salon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Umm, Mio-sama…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just then, Noel suddenly said that, causing Mio to suddenly become vigilant, thinking that she was about to tease her again. But--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“May I ask, how is Lars doing?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lars… Are you talking about Takigawa?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The impression of Takigawa was too strong, making her unable to connect him to his original name.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well… He seems to get along with Basara pretty well, since he spends a lot of time in school with him. Probably because they’re like-minded, those two boys mess around a lot.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But after finding out that Takigawa was the one behind that white mask, Mio and Yuki weren’t very happy. As Takigawa said some cruel words to reopen the wound in his heart while he was critically injured, both of them are still unable to forgive him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Why do you suddenly ask…? Do you know him?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Yes. Lars and I grew up in the same orphanage.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From her tone, it was easy to guess what kind of emotions Noel held for Takigawa.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…It’s the same as me.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She has had the same thoughts when she found out Basara and Takigawa and joined hands in the shadows.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just like when she found out that Maria and Basara had been out in the nights hunting rouge evil beings.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The wanting to ask, just why, were they doing such dangerous things without telling her. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But Mio couldn’t. Because for Mio, Basara putting himself in danger wasn’t for any reason other than protecting her. If Takigawa hadn’t helped; Sheera, who was taken captive by Zolgear, would probably have already been killed. The reason Maria could escape from that tragic ending, was because Basara joined hands with Takigawa. Because of that, Mio couldn’t say anything about it to Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It’s just -- right now, there was a way to erase Noel’s pain, and the key lies within Mio’s hands. So after her hair was washed--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Noel, I--“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Mio turned around, to say something to Noel -- but at that time, someone entered the washing area and sat down on the chair beside Mio. The dissemination of transparent beauty, is Yuki who had also made the same Master-Servant Contract with Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--I’ll be using this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Without looking at either of them directly in the eye, Yuki began to wash herself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even without anyone saying anything, the atmosphere began to become awkward.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Umm, Mio-sama …I shall not interrupt you any further.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From behind Mio’s back, Noel said so as if she had done something wrong, and stood up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please do enjoy our bath, and eliminate fatigue from your body… I will be awaiting orders in the changing room -- Yuki&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Miss Yuki is used here, like the many places in the text&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;, please excuse me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While washing her body, Yuki nodded, and hence Noel left the bath after giving a bow. And then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--You’re thinking that by going to ask Klaus yourself, you can cancel Takigawa’s spying mission, right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hearing Yuki say snappily--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I only just…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Mio lowered her head evasively.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We did not request for a luxurious room or meal, it was all things that they had prepared; so even if they ask us to reciprocate them, we can reject them. However, once we make any request, the situation would be different; if we were asked to reciprocate, it would be difficult for us to reject them. And more importantly -- doing that would be the same as exposing our weak point.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Have you forgotten?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;The demon called Klaus was one of Wilbert’s advisers, a strategist once called the 『Virtuous Elder』. The luxurious rooms, meal, and dining hall and the grand welcoming, all of those were all a performance to make you agree to become the new Demon Lord. If you were to let those people know that you are someone able to sympathise with them, do you even know what the consequences are? If you do not want Takigawa to have an even more dangerous mission, if you want to fulfil the wish of a maid worrying for her childhood sweetheart -- the moment he grabs onto an emotion he can use to make his attack on you, he’ll immediately attempt to use it to make a negotiation or transaction; and if it still isn’t possible, he might even utilise threats…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Stopping here, Yuki turned to look at Kurumi who is bathing together with the loli succubus.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Threats like sending away Maria from your side, and making her carry out suicidal missions are entirely possible -- and since her mother and older sister are here, Maria cannot reject any orders.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………I’m sorry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unable to retort -- Mio lowered her head remorsefully.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No need to apologise… It’s just, I hope that you don’t forget that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And as if giving advice, Yuki then said to Mio:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Even if you still hadn&#039;t decided what to do with Wilbert’s power, I guess that you had already reached a conclusion regarding the identity of 『Naruse Mio』, so don’t go forgetting that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, Mio then nodded in agreement.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Ah, you’re right… I got it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now, she is not the daughter of the previous Demon Lord, but Basara&#039;s family, his sister -- as well as his servant.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
No matter what happens, being by his side is a must. That, is Naruse Mio’s only desire.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And for that very desire, all of them must return to that home one day. Just then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It’s fine if you get it, and I will also think of something to help you out -- because that is also Basara’s wish.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Yuki also quickly expressed to Mio’s agreement. In Mio’s heart, Yuki is a rival she must never fall behind -- but she was also a comrade who could understand more than anyone. Thus--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Thank you, Yuki.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Feeling more at ease, Mio expressed her thanks, mixing in a shade of threatening.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No need for thanks… Oh, that’s right--“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Holding out a towel from the foamy bucket towards Mio, Yuki then said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Mio, help me wash my back.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Towards the tone that of an older sister commanding a younger sister, Mio widened her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Probably giving some advice made her somewhat cocky. Thus Mio smiled and--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You have a really high price tag…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Took that towel and after going behind Yuki, she began scrubbing her back -- not using the towel, but with her hands instead.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The one who had been subjugated by Basara and had her sensitivity raised a lot by him was not Mio alone. That’s why--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Yaaaaaaahhhhhhh!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Yuki let out a cute scream, while jumping up from the stool.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While soaking in the bath, Nonaka Kurumi saw her older sister in the washing area suddenly jump up while screaming.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And then collapse to the floor onto her butt.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『………』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silently turning around to look at Mio who had a victor’s smile on her face, Yuki made her counterattack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After pushing Mio down onto the floor and while straddling over her, she began to violently knead those large breasts.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『 ! ---- 』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Mio screamed, and arched her back under Yuki, and then her two hands began to do the same things to Yuki’s butt, not wanting to be outdone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『 ----! 』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And it was Yuki’s turn to react to a sudden kneading -- the two girls thus began waging a war over their pride. Seeing those two older sisters like that--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
‘’It’s better if I don’t invite trouble onto myself.’’  From within the bath, Kurumi turned around to have her back face the washing area Yuki and Mio were at.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And proceeded to take a stretch in the bath&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;the one where people stretch their backs after waking up in the morning&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;, letting the warmth of the water fill her. Comfortably exhaling a deep breath, she then scooped some water with her hands. The slightly blue hot spring, seemed to have been drawn directly from underground, so it naturally would have rather high demonic concentrations. However--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Ah, it seems to have much less of a load on me now.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Comparing to when she had just arrived in the Demon Realm, the level of discomfort she felt back then now seemed to have been just a dream. Although her getting used to the demonic concentrations had a hand in that, it was not the main reason. Thus--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kurumi raised her left hand from the water and held it out, and gathered her consciousness towards it, and her gauntlet for controlling spirits then materialised. Within some of the notches in the gauntlet, balls of various colours have been inserted. Those were elements needed for communicating with the spirits.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--Right now, there were a few black balls that weren’t there before.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In Lucia’s office, Basara had turned the imbroglio&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;a confused heap; an extremely confused, complicated, or embarrassing situation&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; in her heart into happiness and pleasure and subjugated her, disentangling her emotions -- when she opened her eyes, Kurumi realised that she was on a bed in another room.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing Maria sleeping while snuggled up against her, she then remembered what Basara had done to her, she then became a ball of internal struggles. At that time, Lucia came to that room and upon seeing her situation, Lucia then said to the alert Kurumi in a cold and indifferent tone: [Thank you for being friends with Maria], and gave a certain something to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That something was these black elementals. These black elementals had the protection of high-class spirits in the Demon Realm, which thus allowed Kurumi to communicate with spirits not bound with a Master-Servant Contract while using spirit magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And with the protection of high-class spirits, the difficulty of borrowing a spirits’ power was lowered a lot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For Kurumi who had not made a Master-Servant Contract with Basara and was unable to increase her battle potential by deepening her relationship with him, this was help coming to her when she needed it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia is part of the Moderates Faction and is a demon, and she is the aide of Ramsas who gave the cold shoulder to Mio. That, made Kurumi put up some resistance towards Lucia in the beginning, but accepted her in the end. Reason being, her pride as a hero is not what’s most important now, but it was instead not becoming a burden to Basara and the others.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thus for the period of time while she was in the Demon Realm, she hoped to at least be able to use it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…To think that I would begin to think like this…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If it was the her in the past, it would be unthinkable for her to live together with Maria who lived together with the surveillance target Naruse Mio, much less fight alongside her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Also,&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In their daily life, Maria seemed to be putting her in embarrassing situations every day, and she could only just accept it since she wanted to not be left behind. In fact, not just Maria – it would be even Basara or Yuki sometimes. And that is the reason why Kurumi has become the way she is now, boldly doing lewd and lecherous things in Lucia’s office, exposing her incredibly debaucherous side.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Speaking of which – no matter how embarrassing it has become, rejecting any of that is not an option.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;..So it really seems that the truth is I don’t really hate those kind of things…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just like Mio and Yuki, Kurumi is slowly becoming more and more lewd.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And it’s not only that. Kurumi had turned an event she thought was only possible in her dreams into reality today, to have a kiss with Basara. Although her first time was in her dream, and doing it in reality was only to satisfy Lucia, Kurumi still did automatically move her lips to kiss with Basara’s lips – indulging in her sexuality in her tongue filled with emotions, lusting for Basara’s existence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From the moment when their lips made contact, the warmth and pleasure she received from Basara still remained fresh in Kurumi’s mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kurumi suddenly turned red from the embarrassment and brought her face back into the water partially, while blowing bubbles and not realising that someone was sneaking up on her—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…--My dear Kurumi~♪”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eeeaahhhh!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly being hugged from behind by Maria, Kurumi let out a high-pitched scream.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Oi, don’t go about scaring me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara, weren’t you the one who seemed miffed and ignored me, making a certain someone very lonely~…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Y-You, would you be looking over there – at the place older sis and Mio are?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria giggled and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course I would, but just me alone doing that would be very boring, and that’s why I came over here to enjoy it together with you – just like usual times when we enjoyed erotic films together~.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-Weren’t you the one who forced me to watch them, saying that it was For Academic Purposes…!”&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;most likely a reference to F.A.P. – [F]or [A]cademic [P]urposes; masturbation material search&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“And I wasn’t wrong at all… That’s why this is also research material.”&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;the aforementioned material&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And with a captivating smile, Maria began to massage Kurumi’s breasts and started licking her neck.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At Maria’s assault, Kurumi attempted to put up her death struggle, trying to shake off Maria while flailing her arms about on the water surface, but failing in the end.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hu fufu… You’ve been through this so many times, but you’re just as shy as your first time… Kurumi is really cute~.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With burning flames of passion visible within her eyes, Maria then said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Come, Kurumi. Give me your underarms, expose your underarms&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;underarms / armpit&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;. I want to fill up your weakness with my saliva.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Shit. If this continues, I will fall into one of Maria’s seasoned traps.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And thus, Kurumi turned her line of sight towards the washing area Mio and Yuki were at, hoping for rescue.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Despite her attention leaving that area for only a slight moment, the situation there has already changed a lot. With foam covering their bodies, they were still assaulting each other’s weak spots while gasping and panting heavily, with no intention of giving up at all; they’ve not gotten into the hot spring yet, but their eyes have already become lifeless, voices weak, and skins pink. Of course, they’re completely oblivious to Kurumi’s predicament. When Maria saw that Kurumi now had no one else to turn to for help—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Fufufu, it’s too bad …Come, give it up and let me lick you, you lewd girl hero~”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ !&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;~~~~~~&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As Maria’s lips got closer, Kurumi’s eyes also widened as usual in anticipation of the assault of pleasure.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ah? What’s that elemental, I’ve never seen that colour there before.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria then suddenly noticed those black elementals set into her gauntlet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Which then made Kurumi remember -- what Lucia had said before when she gave them to her. Back then, Lucia had said—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『Please continue to look after my little sister. 』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She did look at the Maria sleeping beside her when she said that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thus, entrusted with looking after Maria, she asked those black elementals to also look after her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, a magic pattern opened up on the floor—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eh--…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the moment Maria let out a weird sound upon seeing that – the loli succubus flew out from the bath together with a large amount of bathwater, colliding with Mio and Yuki by the wall in the washing area, and also sending the stools and bucket flying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-W-What happened!? What’s that loud noise!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Noel frantically rushed into the bath, but Kurumi remained silent, and then got out from the bath quickly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will definitely use it well with much gratitude…Hmph!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Throwing that out behind her, Kurumi then left the bath area on her own first.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 3===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After having dinner alone within his own room, Ramsas left the room, and came to a certain place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A place that can allow one to look over the city with just a single glance – the top of the main tower, which is the city’s highest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Having arrived at that place, Ramsas looked down at the illuminated streets quietly. About fifteen minutes later—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You insisted on not seeing Mio-sama even once… Is this really for the best?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Coming to place after a while, Lucia asked him. Hearing his faithful subordinate’s question, Ramsas then answered in a low voice while not moving his sight from the city areas:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Why should I go and see her?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And with that, Lucia decided to not say anymore, and after giving a bow, she moved back and left Ramsas alone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, Ramsas continued standing while the night wind continued to blow.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Ramsas’s eyebrow twitched slightly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An unnatural change in the night wind’s currents just occurred, and it was at a degree where a normal person wouldn’t notice – there was a pair of eyes, looking at Ramsas from behind him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--It was not Lucia, and not one of the maids serving under her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, some more changes to his surroundings occurred. Sounds of footsteps as if announcing a person’s existence, slowly neared him. Then—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—do you know? There is a place like this platform at where Mio and us live, a place that allows you to look over the nightscape of a city.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Saying those words while standing beside Ramsas, was a youth – Toujou Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Likely, Lucia wasn’t the one who had told this youth of this place; no matter who it was, someone was still being nosy. While looking at the view Ramsas, who had decided not to pursue the matter, was looking at, Basara said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This afternoon… The maid Noel&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Miss Noel&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; had brought us into the city to look around. The view that can be seen from here, is what your younger brother – and you who had took over his work, protected to this day.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing Ramsas return silence as an answer, Basara turned around slowly--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In what you want to protect, why did you not include Mio?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And spit out those words filled with a dark shade.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“After your younger brother died – Zolgear killed his subordinates whom he had trusted to bring up Mio. Although Maria had managed to rescue Mio in a critical moment from Zolgear’s palm, Zolgear had taken Sheera, and then coerced Maria into following his orders…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[But]. Basara said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“According to Takigawa – Lars, you were well aware of this situation, yet you chose to remain quiet and observe, right? No matter how others asked you to prioritise Mio, you still chose to not provide more assistance. Other than Maria who had been coerced by Zolgear, as well as Takigawa who had infiltrated the Current Demon Lord Faction and could not make any obvious moves, you had sent no more help to assist the two with the mission of protecting Mio.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;So why?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Mio is the daughter of your younger brother… In other words, she is your niece. So why did you choose to not make any moves despite knowing that she is faced with such clear danger?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Being questioned with a firm gaze from Basara, Ramsas finally spoke to answer him – he bluntly said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—because there wasn’t a need to at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No need to…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara had already known Ramsas is cold towards Mio.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His reason for still doing all this, was basically just to clarify it all. The truth and reality was just as Lucia had said. Considering that Ramsas has his own set of difficulties and opinions, if Basara would be able to hear about them, he might be able to somewhat understand even if he can’t agree with it. However – Ramsas words just now, was still completely beyond Basara’s expectations.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“There was still no need even when Maria had no choice but to betray Mio after worrying to no end from being coerced by Zolgear? There was still no need even when Mio had been abducted and have who-knows-what done by Zolgear to her? After all these incidents, are you really going to say that there’s no need to increase her protection?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Since the reports have said that she’s completely safe, is there really a need to ask for more?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That was because we…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To be able to safely rescue Mio, they all had racked their brains and struggled with their lives. Viewing it from another angle, perhaps being able to save Mio before she was ruined by Zolgear, as well as safely rescuing Sheera who was taken hostage, was the best possible result. However – if back then Ramsas had accepted Klaus and his other subordinates’ views to take effective actions like increasing the amount of protection, then perhaps the incident of Mio being abducted by Zolgear might have never happened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Additionally, Takigawa even knew where Zolgear was hiding, to the point where he even knew where Sheera was being kept hostage; if he had sent out his elite forces to launch an attack, the culprit known as Zolgear might have already been exterminated long ago. But he hadn’t, so he definitely has no right to speak about it – just as Basara gave his retort while becoming mad, Ramsas finally looked at him, and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You guys – how was it? From what I know, the main reason Zolgear had retreated in his defeat was not because of you guys, but it was Wilbert’s daughter who let her powers go berserk, right? Even if the reason for it going berserk was due to thinking that Sheera had been killed, she would’ve put up a great opposition if Zolgear were to casually make any moves against her. With that, even if you and those girls you knew since you were small weren’t there, she would still be saved in the end. Would that way of thinking be wrong?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Perhaps it might not have been wrong. Even if he hadn’t done anything Mio and Sheera might still be saved.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;However&#039;&#039; – Basara then said wile heavily emphasising:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Those kind of words, can only be said by the people like us who had taken real action to save Mio and the others – people like you who had just remained standing by the sides and did nothing better than try to score points now that that is already over.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara seems to have hit a sore area, and Ramsas remained quiet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…I have no intention of questioning whether your decision was right or wrong. The result in the end was as you said: Mio and Sheera are safe, and Maria and Zest escaped from Zolgear’s control. What I would like to question instead, is if you had intentionally disregarded Mio.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara then continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But, that’s already enough – I already understand it. Originally, I had even speculated if you had given Mio this attitude because your views were different &lt;br /&gt;
from your younger brother… but no matter what you say, I wouldn’t accept it. I have already made the decision to protect Mio – the one who had become my little sister, a person who is part of my family. So no matter how big or noble of a reason or excuse you give me, it’s not my business at all, and doing any of that would be completely meaningless.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—so, do you want to follow Klaus’s words, and let that girl become the next Demon Lord?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the question Ramsas asked in a low tone, Basara shook his head and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No… Klaus&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Mr. Klaus&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; has been very sincere to us, thinking for our sakes at first glance – but he just wants to take advantage of the story that Mio is the only daughter of the previous Demon Lord who had inherited his power, completely ignoring if she has the qualifications to do so and her own will, treating her as only a political tool.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
All Mio wants is to be a normal girl, who lives a peaceful life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And having sent her away from his side to live a peaceful life in the Human Realm that too is also all Wilbert wants.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And yet – Klaus who claims to respect and love Wilbert, disregarded his lord’s wishes, and is pushing for Mio to be a new Demon Lord. Reportedly, the current Demon lord also seems to have been given the throne to become a chess piece by the Council, so the two sides can be said to be equal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Also,&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With his lord’s daughter, the one who had made a Master-Servant Contract being the son of the number one enemy in the Great War, Klaus was especially kind towards Basara to the point where it seemed completely unnatural. Who knows, even the matter of Mio who had no choice but to make a Master-Servant Contract might be taken advantage of; making it into a story where thanks to Wilbert sending troops to put a stop to the Great War, they finally managed to create good relations between the son of the scary [God of War] Jin from the Hero Tribe and the only daughter of the Demon Lord, turning it into another of Wilbert’s achievements.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Both routes are equally bad.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To put it bluntly, all that side wanted are personal benefits – the reason Toujou Basara is unable to accept them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Absolutely.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I do understand that both you and Klaus have your own thoughts and plans, and that the subordinates within the Moderates Faction respect the opinions of you higher-ups. However – you all just want to take advantage of Mio, with no shred of consideration to the person in question. In Mio’s moments of great pain, you refused to lend a hand despite knowing about it, and Klaus followed that decision and stood by idly, both sides are the same. And so from my viewpoint, you all are just trash.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since the moment they were called to the Demon Realm to till now, Basara had submitted to the humiliation, but he could not take it any longer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And so he spit it all out:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I’ll put it bluntly. You guys shouldn’t have called her here, only to just put her aside. You guys had always been ignoring and snubbing her for so long… and now that in order to win against the Current Demon Lord Faction you demand for her presence or for her to hand over her inherited power to you? Stop cracking jokes. That power was given to the one he had not hesitated to separate with by your younger brother to protect herself. Because of her circumstances, Mio has already given up a lot of things; that has to stop.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Listen carefully.&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We will no longer hold anymore hopes and anticipate anything more from you. So at least, stop taking things away from her. To Mio, that power is a gift from her own father, the only bond between them – you guys basically have no rights or authority to intervene in that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ramsas silently listened to Basara ranting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…So this is the son of &#039;&#039;&#039;that man&#039;&#039;&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;I see.&#039;&#039; The report had said that he was exiled from the Hero&#039;s [Tribe], and now I can understand why. This youth, is really indeed not suited to be a Hero.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…He’s far too naive.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ramsas wanted to let this youth carried away in the heat of the moment know of something called ‘Reality’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The lives of the Royal Family do not belong to themselves, they live for the people, and die for the people – not even a single person can escape from that blood tie. Since that girl is Wilbert’s daughter, she is part of the Royal Family, thus she has a duty to dedicate her life for the people.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I’ve said this already, you guys had cast her aside for so long, and yet now you want to use 『Because she is Royalty』 as a reason is just too—“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—Originally living a civilian’s life, and then only to have that life taken away due to the sudden revelation of Royal blood ties; all that is not uncommon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Additionally&#039;&#039; – Ramsas continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Although Klaus and I think and do things differently, the both of us have a duty to protect everything here as the ones who stand over the people. Since you guys had walked through the streets in the evening, you should’ve already seen it clearly. In reality, you protecting that girl like that – could just very well turn all that you saw and everyone you have met on the streets into dust, do you understand?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course I d—“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And Ramsas bluntedly said to Basara trying to refute:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then why are you still being persistent… Then again, you just said that that girl had already given up a lot of things… but she was living happy days in a place unrelated to the political wrangling and fights; that, was thanks to her being Wilbert’s daughter. Now we have a need for her who had lived because of Wilbert’s death, so he called her back – it was just that her time ran out, and that it was time to say goodbye to the unneeded necessity to acknowledge her bloodline and the disregarding of her responsibility.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! ……”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara, whose expression, became complicated—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What you said, was something I cannot completely agree with. You had said, that that girl doesn’t even know that she doesn’t have the qualification, and shouldn’t become the Demon Lord—“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And Ramsas resolutely replied:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is correct. That girl who had tied a Master-Servant Contract with a little brat like you who had been expelled from the Hero [Tribe], who had let herself become a lowly sensual bondage slave; someone like that has no right to become a Demon Lord, and that’s why I wanted her to just obediently hand over Wilbert’s power.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, the atmosphere suddenly changed. Basara’s fighting intent aimed at Ramsas, became even more incisive and cold.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It became blatant killing intent. Then—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Take it back… If not—“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara’s right hand went towards Ramsas, and at that moment—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--That’s enough.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Shinmai_v05_095.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Countless numbers of guns were then aimed at Basara’s throat, held by the maidservants who had surrounded them. Commanding these maidservants armed with weapons, Lucia came to Ramsas’s side—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It’s already difficult enough to overlook the various insults towards Ramsas-sama – if you continue to show disrespect, you shall not be forgiven even if you are Mio-sama and Maria’s saviour.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And said coldly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara remained quiet, and lowered his head. But—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;---------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;?』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The maidservants holding Basara at gunpoint suddenly received a shock, and their bodies tense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rather than decreasing, Basara’s killing intent further increased, and then—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Insults… insults, you said? Those should be my words. Having heard Mio – hearing my own little sister receiving that kind of insult, do you really think this warning is enough to push me over and make me leave it as it is?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As if ignoring the maidservants surrounding him, light appeared in his right hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And his own weapon appeared from the light—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……It’s a shame. I had thought you were smarter than that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia’s eyes narrowed, and just as she was about to give her orders—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“---Kay kay,   ~Th-a-t’s – e-nou-gh ♪”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An extremely hearty voice cut into the tense atmosphere from the side.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ramsas’s head turned, and found Sheera with Zest behind her standing there,&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Mother-sama…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia frowned while looking at her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lucia-ya… If you were to start fighting here, Mio&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;[Chinese]little sis, she refers to Basara and the rest like her little siblings, like the previous chapters&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; and the others would immediately find out, and what would you do if they were to come running over? Even if you are able to incapacitate Basara before they realise, the matter that you argued with him would still come to light. Mio and Yuki both had made the Master-Servant Contract with Basara, so throwing him into the dungeons would be useless.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then—“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—you’ll create a barrier, so that they won’t realise?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera smiled at Lucia preparing a retort and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It’ll be useless. Doing so will only increase their suspicions, and you won’t be able to get Mio’s assistance in the end, are you fine with that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing Lucia become unable to retort, Sheera’s line of sight turned to Basara and she said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Basara, you too should stop making a scene. If you were to start fighting now with Lucia or Ramsas, you won’t be able to make them back down even if you win. It’s great that you love your little sister Mio so much, but if she were to find out you got hurt when you flared up for her sake – she’ll blame herself. Are you still fine with that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera’s words caused Basara to become silent – and he retracted his killing intent soon after, his weapon also disappearing. Seeing this, Sheera smiled and said: [Good Boy.] The maidservants also seemed to relax. Finally, Sheera looked at Ramsas and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well then, I’ll be bringing Basara away – is it fine?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Do as you like.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[Okay.] Hearing Ramsas say so, Sheera immediately brought Basara away together with Zest, disappearing into the house&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;house/castle&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—Ramsas-sama, I’m very sorry, for my mother’s impertinence.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia lowered her head and apologised—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It’s fine… It isn’t that person’s first time creating trouble.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, Ramsas looked out towards the city once again.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Dots of light from the city was spread throughout the city, the stars illuminating the night sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 4===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After being brought away from the platform Ramsas and the others were at by Sheera, Toujou Basara, was then brought to a certain place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That place, is the bath for male guests’ use. He had already taken a bath before coming to the Demon Realm, and right now he wanted to be alone, so he got ready to reject taking a bath, but—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—Right now you are still mad at Ramsas, do you really think you can fall asleep?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was still unable to retort against Sheera. Many things have happened since he entered the Demon Realm, and apart from the nervousness he was expecting, he probably accumulated some stress from things that had went beyond what he was expecting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although relaxing to the point where he would put down his guard must be avoided at all costs, he can’t really see how much longer they would have to stay in the Demon Realm according to the current situation; being too nervous would only cause his concentration to wane, and things would be dire if he were to not be at his best due to wear when needed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And thus, Basara finally accepted Sheera’s suggestion and got ready to take a bath, but--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……For some reason, I knew it would turn out like this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This mother before him is known to be even more mischievous than Maria, due to her following her succubus instincts more than half the time, and so she had followed Basara into the bath as expected. Needless to say, Zest too was also present in the males’ bath.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sitting naked on a stool before Basara, Sheera was trying to suppress her giggles while saying:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well, that’s obvious… Zest&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;calling Zest her imouto&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; is a maidservant serving Basara, while I am her superior. I’m just here to supervise the maid-in-training while she does her duties to ensure that she is serving you well~.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Amazing…&#039;&#039; She is completely different to Maria who always brags, being able to so easily turn a lie into the truth. Completely masterful.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What if after Maria grows up, what would happen if she turns out just like Sheera? As a touch of anxiety crossed Basara’s mind--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Well then, here comes your punishment.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest said that, and then began washing his back -- with her large matured breasts.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Hold it right there! Why are you doing it so naturally!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara couldn’t help but to turn around, only to find a naked foamy Zest say tearfully:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I’m very sorry… I’m still not used to these kind of things, did I hurt you?”&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;cause you pain?&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uhh, no… That wouldn’t.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;A question: Which male would ever experience pain from being rubbed against a female’s breasts?&#039;&#039; --  that, is one question Basara very much wanted to scream out, but was unable to thanks to Zest seemingly blaming herself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I&#039;m very sorry Basara&amp;lt;Mr.&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;… Sheera-sama had told me that this was how to help wash a Master, and had even intricately thought me how to do so. This is just my inability to master the art.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I understand… It’s fine, and you’re doing it not too bad -- no, the problem does not lie with you at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After hurriedly consoling Zest behind him, he then stared at Sheera who was before him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sheera… Just what in the world did you teach Zest?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara, Basara, don’t make such a scary face… Is anything wrong?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera then boasted while smiling:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I honestly don’t know what else a woman would use when washing a male… I guess that this must be the fault of the differences between the cultures of Demons and Humans.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, no matter how you think about it, it only exists within the culture of you succubi.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Hurry up and apologise to the other races making up the Demons Race, you loli succubus Mom.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, is there something known as 『Local Customs』 in the Human Realm? Over here, of course you would have to accept the customs of our culture, isn’t that right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Rather than [Local], it feels more like I’ve entered an urn.” &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt; Rather than customs of a community, it seems more like ones that of a cult&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Too deep…&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;It&#039;s starting to get spiritual&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If you insist, it would be fine if you want to wash yourself…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera then made an apologetic face,&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But that means your maid isn&#039;t doing her job… Later I will have to hand Zest a punishment -- the kind that is especially painful.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…………I get it already. Alright, Zest… I’ll be counting on you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It’s as if Basara did a bad deed, yet Zest exultantly answered and once again began to use her soft breasts to scrub Basara’s body. &#039;&#039;Crap…&#039;&#039; That softness, is just too damn comfortable, and there are just only subtle differences from those others who would use their breasts to help Basara wash himself. Once again, Basara experienced just how unique the breasts of every person are. If his thinking were to go any further, his own rationality would be in danger -- in order to try to not set the national holiday or prime number&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Chinese language puns, referring to an erection&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;, Basara tried to scatter his focus.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ah~? Basara seems to be very calm…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[How boring]. When Sheera said that, Toujou Basara sighed:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I’m so very sorry… I’m starting to become used to these kinds of situations.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Arara, what shocking words, to be able to get used to a girl scrubbing you with her breasts…? You’ve become a hero at such a young age.&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Not the real hero in this story. The Hero of Youths, one who is able to ‘control’ his own libido&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eighty percent of it are the fruits of the labour of your daughter…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Up to now, both Yuki and Mio who had a Master-Servant Contract with Basara had often used their breasts to scrub his body, thanks to Maria’s ‘wonderful’ suggestions. In order to induce jealousy which would then activate the curse to send them into an aroused state, Maria too would also sometimes demonstrate for them to see; later, Kurumi too was also dragged into this activity -- the remaining twenty percent, belongs to the infirmary teacher Hasegawa who was an exception. It was only Hasegawa, who had not made a Master-Servant Contract with him and had no need to increase her battle potential, who was not dragged helplessly into this by Maria, and had willingly and voluntarily done that kind of thing with Basara. Just then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Please excuse me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Saying that from behind his back, Zest’s hands which had been embracing Basara’s abdomen suddenly descended, slipping under the towel wrapped around his waist.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-Hold on, Zest! I can wash that place myself!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I’m very sorry…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara’s suddenly screamed, causing Zest to hurriedly withdraw her hands from shock, but in that moment--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Don’t stop and continue, Zest.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A cold voice that could send chills sounded out within the warm bath. Though Basara wanted to retort with a [Stop joking around!] -- he wasn’t able to. Reason being, Sheera was releasing pressure that seemed impossible from her small loli body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Even if the other party wants to do it themselves, this is supposed to be a maidservants’ duty and reason for existence… &#039;&#039;&#039;Continue.&#039;&#039;&#039;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey --…Haven’t I already said that there is no need to?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Gulping, Basara then managed to force out some resistance, but--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Aren’t you just denying the reason for a maid’s existence, Basara, just like saying 『I don’t need you following me』? Speaking of which, you seem to be misunderstanding something…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera continued coldly:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It was my order for Zest to serve you. Zest is my maidservant, her master is not you, but me; If I order her to wash another male’s body, she will…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And then gave a cold laugh.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Even if she has to help wash those soldiers who would harass her, she will still do so if it is my order. That is the duty of a maid whose duty is to serve people.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Those words caused discomfort within his heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Cracking that kind of joke is just too cruel… If that happens, I wouldn&#039;t let Zest continue to be your maidservant.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But the thing is, you don’t have the authority to do so, Basara. You had handed Zest over for us to handle her which is why she is now my maidservant… And so, regarding her all, my word is absolute. The one who had created this result is you -- the decision you had made at the beginning.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara anxiously tried to form a rebuttal -- Basara had told Zest before that if anything happens, she can return to the Toujou Household anytime, as he had judged that she would be able to escape from the Demon Realm with her power. However, those words were just merely for Zest, and wasn’t approved by Sheera. Seeing Basara beginning to turn pale--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How selfish… Ignoring her life and death normally, and then suddenly wishing everyone to be happy when you see her.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera continued while making a caustic&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;sarcastic in a scathing and bitter way&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; smile:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t tell me -- you haven’t realised that Zest is isolated and helpless in this city?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara remained silent, as he did vaguely have that sort of feeling. Other than Sheera or Lucia, he had not seen anyone else in the city speak with Zest; while visiting the city areas, Noel also doesn’t seem to be familiar with Zest -- and from Noel’s personality, it might perhaps have been that way because of pressure from the higher-ups. For Zest who was part of the Current Demon Lord Faction to find a place for her in the Moderates, it really isn’t an easy task. Just then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--I would also like to remind you, that Zest’s position and situation would also very likely be going downhill some more.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera said something that can’t be ignored.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What do you mean?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you still not get it? No matter if Mio in the end decides to go with the wishes of either Ramsas or Klaus, that final decision will definitely cause resentment in the other party. Adding on that you had just stupidly went to argue with Ramsas saying that you won’t accept both sides’ wishes, would there still be anyone within the Moderates Faction that would still treat you as one of them?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If that’s the case--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Even if you all are able to safely make it back to the Human Realm… I believe it wouldn’t be difficult to guess who would be the one baring their fangs at you, right? After all, weren’t you the ones who asked us to handle Zest?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara said in a low voice, groaning. He had never thought about it -- that protesting for Mio would bring about the worsening of Zest’s circumstances. As Basara became speechless--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“All these are the results of the decisions you guys have made. The you right now, have no authority at all to stop Zest from doing anything… If you still want Zest to listen and obey you no matter what, and not let her be in danger of being tarnished by someone she wants to--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera giggled some more, and then continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Basara -- you must become her master, make her into a thing of yours.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I, become Zest’s master…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara turned to look at Zest, only to see Zest slowly raise her lowered head, her eyes meeting with Basara’s. There was no signs of rejecting Basara at all in her eyes -- but rather, it was as if hoping what Sheera said will turn into reality. However--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Isn’t the Master-Servant Contract magic only usable on the night of a full moon…? There’s still a very long time before the next full moon comes.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara… So in the end you are not opposed to making a Master-Servant Contract with Zest?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Only if -- Zest herself agrees to it, then I will have no opposition.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara directly gave his affirmation to Sheera, because the decision to make a Master-Servant Contract with Zest -- that decision, was already made long ago in his heart, from before Basara entered the Demon Realm.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At those words, Zest stared at him in shock. Then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara, then I would say that there’s no problems at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The restriction of a full moon, only exists when the magic is used in the Human Realm… The Master-Servant Contract is pretty commonplace within the Demon Realm, so it can be used anytime. Since everyone already knows that I’m casual, bold, and unconstrained, even Ramsas and Klaus likely wouldn’t say anything if I were to use the Master-Servant magic to make you Zest’s master.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……I see.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With Sheera’s explanation, Basara murmured his understanding of that, and also understood why Sheera’s attitude towards him had changed suddenly. Zest’s position and circumstances, must be in a much bigger danger than what Basara had thought. That’s why--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Is this the only chance?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now -- Basara is standing at the intersection to decide if he really has the power to be able to protect Zest, but the situation isn’t really 「No Problems at all」 like Sheera said. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Zest… Let me ask you first, are you really willing to have a Master-Servant Contract with me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thus, Basara ask Zest who was before him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-This isn’t something that can be selfishly decided by me alone, I would still need the approval of Mio-sama and the others.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Towards Zest who replied with her head lowered while biting her lower lip, Toujou Basara continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--I have already obtained their approval for this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eh--! …?&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest raised her head from the shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We have already discussed this matter before we had come here. If it was deemed that there is a need to, I will bring you back together with me -- and they gave their approval.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Also&#039;&#039;--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&#039;&#039;They&#039;&#039; -- of course includes Mio.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Mio-sama she…? …Is it - really the truth?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara then put on a smile, and said to the dumbfounded Zest:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It’s the truth. It exactly because that’s the kind of person she is, that’s become the reason why I will protect her no matter what… So if you are willing to, I hope that you can help me in protecting her -- protecting my proud and arrogant little sister, Zest.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Please.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If you are willing to help me in protecting her… I too will also protect you with my all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Finishing, Toujou Basara gazed at Zest sincerely. After a long period of silence--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………I refuse.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara heard it -- Zest’s extremely soft voice saying out her rejection.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thus, [I see], those words came to Basara’s mouth -- but they never made it out of his mouth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Reason being, Zest hasn’t finished speaking. Those are, her feelings that have always been suppressed up till now.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I too want to protect Mio-sama, but… I do not want Basara to be protecting me, or else it would make the Master-Servant Contract meaningless. I wish to become your maidservant, to truly become your subordinate… to live for you only, and go through happy and tough times together.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Zest…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest poured out her own thoughts, and after Basara said her name--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please, Basara… Please allow me to remain by your side forever!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She pressed herself against Basara’s chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To which Basara whispered into her ear: [Yes.] -- his own choice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Sheera, looks like I’ll be troubling you once again.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment he finished his sentence, a magic circle opened up beneath them on the bath’s floor in order to let Basara and Zest make the Master-Servant Contract.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Thank goodness that the efforts I spent on preparing these won’t go to waste.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As if knowing that this would happen, that small young and glamorous succubus smiled, and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If you want it to be like Mio’s and Yuki’s, the Contract would need to be made through a succubus’s power.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And at the same time, a magic circle appeared on the back of Basara’s hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that -- there was no need to say&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;had the urge to use the word [narrate] instead&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; what came after that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;”------“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“------“&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara stretched his right hand towards Zest, who respectfully kneeled and received the palm -- and lightly kissed the magic circle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara and Zest were then immediately enveloped by the light indicating that the Contract has been completed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…With that…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest is now finally Basara’s subordinate, but for the question of whether he is able to be able to protect Zest, it still depended on whether his good fortune will last. Feeling the weight of the responsibility on him increasing, Basara raised Zest’s hand to aid her in standing up. It was then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ya--Fuaaaahhhhh!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest gave a cutesy scream, and limply remained attached to Basara. Taking a closer look, the collar-like markings on Zest’s throat showing the activation of the curse could be seen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The unbelievable amounts of pleasure, caused Zest’s whole body to tremble while she was in Basara’s arms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…S-So this is…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although it was somewhat painful, the pleasure that was stronger continued flowing out from the depths of Zest’s body. Within the fresh numbness and aches, Zest is now currently experiencing her indescribable first experience. This sweetness that she is experiencing right now -- so this is the happiness that belongs solely to women. Just then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-Why…? Didn’t making the Contract go smoothly?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara had questions, while holding Zest within his arms. This development seemed exactly just like the developments that happened during the contract making with both Yuki and Mio. However, Zest had indeed kissed that magic circle before it disappeared unlike Mio and Yuki -- in fact, Zest herself too doesn’t know why things had turned out like this.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara… So it turned out like this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apparently this was also beyond what Sheera had expected.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I would say that this would be that although you said that there’s no problem, deep within Zest’s heart, she is worried that she would cause you unneeded trouble now that she’s your subordinate, which had activated the curse.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah--…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The reason why Zest harboured guilt, turned Basara speechless.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! …I-I’m very very sorry…I have no intention of doubting your words… Aaaoo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although she was on the verge of crying, Zest still continued trying to quell the anger she thought Basara must be feeling while gasping heavily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Basara-ya, there’s something that I have to reveal… Although my current power is far from the levels during my prime, my succubus powers are still stronger than Maria’s. So, the effects of the aphrodisiac curse are very likely to be much stronger than that of Yuki’s and Mio’s.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes, I can see that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara then flared up while hugging Zest in his arms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t panic… Zest’s powers are above Mio and the others, and the guilt she has probably isn’t really deep, so she’ll probably be able to take it longer than them.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that supposed to be consolation? Anyway, thanks for providing that piece of information.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara sighed, and laid Zest on the floor of the bath.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! …Basa-ra…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As this was her first time experiencing pleasure, Zest had no idea how she should take it, so she could only just look at Basara in a daze.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Zest, please bear with it a little longer. I will soon make you yield, and free you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thus -- Toujou Basara said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Accept me -- as your Master.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Those words are just what Zest wanted to hear -- so, despite the overwhelming pleasure shaking her body--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Yes, Master Basara!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest gave a small smile and stretched out her hands, and said from the very bottom of her heart:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Zest is Master Basara’s maidservant… Please make everyone remember that clearly!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And so Basara nodded -- and silently, his hands went towards Zest’s breasts.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Ah…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not just Zolgear, that body part which no male has ever touched before -- in those days after leaving Basara&#039;s side, those days where her endless yearning for him and dreaming about being at his mercy caused changes within her body, turning her breasts into an alluring size. That very evening, when those very breasts were about to be encroached on by the city guards, Basara had stopped them which meant that he had protected her chastity -- that was the first time Basara had protected her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Ah ha…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hence, with the moment of Basara finally caressing those breasts of hers finally arriving, Zest’s heart was beating in happiness. Just seeing his hand getting closer and closer -- raised her desires and anticipation higher and higher.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And then, Basara began caress those plump and obscene breasts of hers -- and it was in that very moment--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;……..!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The aftermath of her breasts being caressed for the first time, was a body-shaking female climax. It was then, Zest’s subjugation had begun.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her eyes rolling and her memories now in short bits and pieces, Zest then slowly regained her normal vision, and upon seeing Basara still at her side--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…How moving, Master Basara and I are finally…!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--In the past, Zest had witnessed the scene where Basara and Yuki made the Master-Servant Contract, and also the scene where Basara, Yuki, Mio and Maria had taken a bath together in the Toujou Residences’ bathroom. Back then, she had secretly decided. That if she were to one day be subjugated by Basara, she wanted it to happen in a bathroom. That very wish had now come true, and Zest kept shouting Basara’s name, wanting to share the happiness she felt; however, since Basara wanted to subjugate Zest as soon as possible, the caresses that were originally gentle quickly became stronger--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Aahh! Yaaah! Fuuaa-aahhaaa…. Yaa-aaaahh! …Haaaaaaaaaaaaaaahhhhhhhhhhhhhhh♥”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The caresses on Zest’s breasts very quickly turned wild, allowing room for only gasps and the pleasure filling up every pore of her body, her burning desires eventually turned her brown-coloured flesh into a wet and bright lewd colour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And as if wanting to express the pleasure she felt, the twisting and quivering of her body continued, and she let out gasps of lewdness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…My goodness… My breasts has already become so salacious&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;having or conveying undue or indecent interest in sexual matters&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara’s fingers dug into the flesh, rapidly kneading Zest’s breasts into various lewd shapes -- emphasising its softness to none other than Zest herself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Lewd…&#039;&#039; The fact that Basara is having his way with her breasts, as well as the pleasure resulted from that, are lewd. Being seen by Basara in this state, further intensified the pleasant feeling within her. Soon, Zest saw the tips of her breasts begin to get excited from the pleasure, swelling up and becoming hard. As her breasts melted into pleasure, that very part became harder and harder.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As Basara kneaded Zest’s breasts, those extremely sensitive tips, were then rubbed in between his thumb and forefinger. It was in that very moment--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ya-- Fuuaaaaaaahhhhhhhhh♥”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Another orgasm at a level where the first one could never compare to, caused Zest’s body to spasm; arching her back and sticking out her butt, her waist to hips were raised uncontrollably. Basara’s right hand then went around Zest’s waist, and lifted her up. By the time she felt a floating sensation, Basara was already face to face with her straddling his crotch.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
By the time she realised that, one of tips of her breasts were already being sucked in his mouth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah--Aahh…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although something happened and her thoughts hadn’t caught up to what she was feeling, Zest’s femininity told her that she too also needed to start moving. And so, Zest’s hands went around Basara’s neck, and she put some force into the legs around his waist -- at the same time, Basara also disappeared from her sights. All of a sudden, she felt some unrest from the thought that he might have cast her aside.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But that was wrong, as Basara was still in front of her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--It was the mirror on the ceiling of the bath that had confirmed that fact.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While orgasming, Zest’s eyes then met with the her in that mirror.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…This is, me…?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What the reflection of the mirror showed, is not the cold and frosty Zest she was in the past, but gasping from the tremendous climaxes with a lewd smile -- it was just simply a girl intoxicated in pleasure.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--However, she didn’t mind, just how lewd her own expression is. Compared to this, Basara sucking her breasts and his hands relentlessly kneading her butt -- the pleasure brought about from those sensations are much more important.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ya,aahh… Ah! W-Why…is, my body, getting hotter and, hotter… Fuaahhh!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Despite climaxing continuously, the curse showed no signs of going away. Her upper body arching to its limit again due to another orgasm, what vision imperceptibly&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;so slight, gradual, or subtle as not to be perceived&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;  became that of what is behind her now.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Ah…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Over there in her sights, is Sheera. She was looking at the scene of Zest lewdly orgasming, with a coquettish&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;behaving in such a way as to suggest a playful sexual attraction; flirtatious&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; smile that didn’t match her young appearance; her lips seemed have said something and after fidgeting a bit, she then went towards the entrance of the bath.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Sheera-sama…?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Is she going to leave before witnessing the end of Zest being subjugated by Basara? With her awareness being broken up by the waves of pleasure, Zest couldn’t understand what Sheera had just said, it was as if like the strong sensations had paralysed her sense of hearing. However -- Zest found out the answers very quickly. Gripping her shoulders, Basara then pulled her towards him, making her sit up straight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, the lips of Basara’s mouth in front of Zest’s eyes started moving.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…………?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest didn’t know how to read lips.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But she was able to forcibly make out the words [I’m] and [ear].&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that -- Basara’s lips began to slowly near her ear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Master Basara, are you…?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara had already kneaded her breasts and butt out of proportions, so in that moment, she couldn’t understand just what Basara was going to do.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And in the next moment, Zest realised a truth and an answer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seems that the ears are full of erogenous zones -- and that, &#039;&#039;&#039;that area&#039;&#039;&#039; is her weak spot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 5===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Um, Basara, are you alright?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maidservant Noel shouted out at the large bath for male guests’ use.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She had been asked by Mio and the other to check on Basara since he still hasn’t returned for a long time after entering the bath.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The basket in the changing room contained not only Basara’s clothes, but also Zest’s and Sheera’s clothes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They all are indeed inside the bath, but could the reason why they were taking so long--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;--Did they faint in the bath from soaking too long?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Should I go inside to check?&#039;&#039; As Noel became indecisive--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;----------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt; ♥』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest’s scream came from inside the bath.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! --A-Are you alright…--!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rushing into the bathing area not knowing what happened -- she then saw it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The scene of Zest’s ear in Basara&#039;s mouth, and Zest experiencing a massive climax. Her waist and hips trembled violently, shaking her large pleasure-filled breasts about.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ah…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Noel’s legs became weak, and she collapsed onto the floor. Just then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--My my, this girl really knows how to pick a great time to come.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A giggling voice came from her side, and a pair of hands covered her eyes from behind her. As if her thoughts were seen through, she then heard someone whispering into her ear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『However, it would be for the best if you forget what you saw here. You are to immediately return to the room Mio and the others are and tell them that Basara will not be returning tonight and to not worry -- do you understand? 』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……………Yes.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rapidly nodding her head, Noel then followed the instructions and left the bath.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To head towards the room Mio and the rest are in -- and to tell them that Basara will not be returning for the night.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After successfully sending Noel off,&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright… No one will be coming in to disturb us anymore.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera giggled, and--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Um, Sheera.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Basara said while hugging Zest:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You were right, about Zest’s weak spot being her ear… Thank you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the neck area of Zest who had already lost consciousness after Basara bit her ear, the markings of the curse has already vanished. However--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara, Basara… Isn’t it too early to be thanking me?” &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What do you mean…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera then said to Basara who began to feel doubt:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What you did just now, was merely to use pleasure to make Zest unconscious, a measure used in emergencies. Didn’t she activate the curse due to being worried over causing you problems as your subordinate? Unless you managed to make her really feel 『I am not causing trouble for Master Basara』 and 『I am able to give my assistance to Master Basara』, the curse will activate again when she regains consciousness and becomes stable.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then -- what I did just now--“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry… Your efforts have not gone to waste.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera then came to where the two of them were, and touched Zest’s cheeks--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, Zest… Time to wake up.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After gently saying that, Zest then opened her eyes slowly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Ah…Sheera-sama…I…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you remember? You had fainted partway while you were serving Basara, so now it’s for the best if you continue… Do you not want to be a bother to Basara? Then you better assist him well, and show that to him.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Master Basara… A bother…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Saying so with confusion in her eyes, the markings then appeared once more on her throat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sheera, you…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing the curse of the Master-Servant Contract activating and thus started to panic, Sheera raised her hand to stop Basara and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry… Right now Zest is calm from the tremendous climaxes she had since her memories aren’t clear, so her guilt isn’t that strong. What you have to do now, is to help her out from this situation. The curse of the Master-Servant Contract has the purpose of reminding the subordinate to be loyal to the Master, so no matter how muddled her memories are, she would still remember the reason for the activation of the curse. Hence, before she starts blaming herself when she completely regains her calm, you have to drill into her the knowledge that her presence and existence will not be harmful but beneficial to you, to give her the confidence to remain by your side as your subordinate.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;After all--&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The tipsy state she is in right now will make it easy for her to reveal her true thoughts. If you were to accomplish that, the curse will no longer activate when she regains her calm after that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the only way to make Zest to be able to continue living as Basara’s subordinate.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! ……--I understand.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Finally, Basara gave his agreement after thinking over it, and so--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Come, Zest… hurry up and serve Basara, and prove that you are able to help him.”&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Sheera’s line&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Yes…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To be able to help him, you must be able to do some meaningful things to be able to have pride in being his subordinate… So, hurry up and go serve Basara, he’s waiting for you.”&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Sheera’s line too&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest nodded, and then wrapped her hands around Basara’s neck.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Master Basara--…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With a confused and alluring smile, she then pressed against Basara’s lips, with her own lips.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basking in the sweet warmth welling up within her in the aftertaste of her climaxes, Zest kissed Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Because as Basara’s subordinate, Zest felt that she must be willing to sacrifice her all for him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Nn… Oi, Zest… Mnn?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest drunkenly kissed the misunderstanding Basara even stronger, and just then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Basara, you should just let Zest do as she please… She had given up her first kiss to you since she thought that will make you happy, so how could you as the master to reciprocate her feelings?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Sheera said that as if scolding him--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara’s body twitched, and he then pulled Zest into his arms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then -- the time to turn them into true Master and Subordinate, began, like as if they were lovers.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--However, it began with just Zest one-sidedly serving Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Despite Zest using her obscene and lewd breasts to continually scrub Basara’s body, he showed no resistance at all. However, this made Zest worried.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
「…Master Basara, please use my body to tell me, just what do I have to do in order to satisfy you. 」&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Giving Basara a kiss as if sending a plea, it appeared that her thoughts had reached Basara’s heart. He then began making demands for her –from that moment onwards, Zest began to experience countless numbers of orgasms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Nibbling her ear while massaging her breast, and her butt – all these made Zest become surprised at just how easily she can be overwhelmed by pleasure, which had caused her to expose her intoxicated and drunk state induced by her orgasms to Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In that regard&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;the revelation of that state in the previous paragraph&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;, Zest was not an exception. Reason being that no matter how embarrassed the person became, it will still be insignificant against the bliss and pleasure she experienced. Just as the minute hand of the clock embedded into the wall of the bath finished one round—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haah… Nn, chii, chiiiii… Aaahh! Master Basara… Nnnnfff…lyaaaa…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The kiss between Zest and Basara, basically turned into intense intertwining of tongues and pooling of saliva.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hands massaging her breasts from behind her back, Zest had twisted her body back to kiss – although the posture brought about some discomfort, it was completely insignificant against the tremendous intense bliss and pleasure Basara gave her. Zest’s instincts as a woman were still steadily rising, plunging her into madness. With all signs of morality and discipline and self-control gone from her eyes—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Master Basara, suck me more… please make Zest’s breasts become as sensitive as Mio-sama’s…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest shook her breasts around like a spoiled child, to which Basara immediately granted her request. Making Zest sit on his thighs facing him, he began kneading her butt with his hands and latched his lips onto that pair stiff tips of her breasts, and loudly sucked it in. Faced with a simultaneous pincer attack—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yaah! Aahh… Fuuu! Nnnhh… Nn-nnuu… Nnnaaaa♥”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest wriggled around on his thighs, squirming around intoxicatedly, drunk on the pleasure bestowed on her by her Master’s forceful caresses. Since not long ago, something deep within her lower abdomen has already melted into heat, as if it was already ready to cause her to burn up anytime; her wet pleasure-drenched sensitive spot had already begun to pour out lewd juices, causing those juices to continuously flow down her thighs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was twerking her hips on a male’s thighs – as if competing for the top contender for the world’s most lewd lap dance. Zest’s lowered sight caught on to just how crazily she was moving her hips about, and it was then she noticed – Basara had also &#039;&#039;grown up&#039;&#039; due to a male’s reaction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Master Basara, because of me, you had already become so…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For someone like her to be able to make Basara become this excited – this fact, made Zest with her already-very-sensitive body even more excited; with her blazing flames of passion, large amounts of saliva suddenly built-up in her mouth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After swallowing that saliva back down in one gulp—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Master Basara… Ah…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest slowly slipped down off Basara’s thighs, and knelt down before his waist.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A subordinate who only cared about her own indulgence in pleasure ad neglected her master’s satisfaction has got no worth to exist. That was the reason why she then slowly raised her eyes to look at Basara, to make a request to Basara with her wet eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara did not say anything—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;--------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And gently stroked her head with his hand with a calm expression&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;was supposed to be [peaceful expression], but it didn’t seem to fit&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; on his face.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That was enough. Even without any words, that was enough to let Zest understand that Basara has given her his clearance.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--Thus using her mouth, Zest began to serve Basara’s private area.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And what happened after that, was just ecstatic – causing Zest to close her eyes, and gathered all of her consciousness into her mouth and tongue that was being used to serve Basara. Later after that—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;-----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;Eh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest opened her eyes, and realised that both she and Basara were lying on the floor of the bath with their legs entangled together.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The two of them were also stark naked. Basara’s face was buried within Zest’s breasts, breathing normally.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Just what exactly happened?&#039;&#039; – Zest was of course stunned&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;stunned/shocked&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;, and just then—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—Are you awake, Zest?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A very leisurely voice came over to her. Turning around to look, she saw Sheera sitting at the edge of the bath.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sheera-sama, I…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You probably should still remember – no matter how intoxicated with pleasure you’ve become, you will still definitely remember the situation when the curse of the Master-Servant Contract activated.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…………Ah.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Those words vividly awakened Zest’s memories from not too long ago. Although Basara’s &#039;&#039;male pheromones&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;referring to something that has been discharged&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; made her feel dizzy, the fact that she currently was still latched onto Basara’s &#039;&#039;avatar&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;male private part&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;still remains.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『Nnhh… Nnfuu, fuuu, lyuu, chuu… Master Basara♥Hapuuf… Ann, chuu…nnn… Haafff, chuu…Puuuff…yeuu…nnaa… Ah-pchh…』&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;various and lots of sound effect text that I have no idea how to put into English. Basically, I tried partially improvising here, so accuracy can’t be guaranteed&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Using her tongue to carefully entangle it, Zest intricately served it with her mouth, and Basara’s stiff &#039;&#039;avatar&#039;&#039; also twitched excitedly in her mouth – in order to satisfy Basara even more, the intoxicated Zest decided to go with trial and error, to search for a way that Basara would like.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『Nnn… Aahh… Aaoo, Master, Basara… Haahh… Aaahh… Fuahh♥』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s right – not only using her mouth, Zest also utilised her large full breasts later on; completely enveloping Basara’s &#039;&#039;avatar&#039;&#039;, she had also completely immersed herself into serving Basara with her own breasts.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was different from when Basara sucked on them – with the effects of friction and other things due to Zest’s breasts gripping onto it, lewd sounds sounded out with every single movement her breasts made. The joy from serving Basara, combined with the immorality from wantonly&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;sexually lawless or unrestrained; loose; lascivious; lewd: wanton behavior&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; rubbing &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039; with her breasts, inextricably&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;incapable of being disentangled, undone, loosed, or solved&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; raised Zest’s lust even higher.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I--…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest finally remembered the ecstasy she had felt when she and Basara and finally met again. She then forcefully pushed the Basara attempting to &#039;&#039;fire&#039;&#039; onto her breasts to the floor of the bath, and after clasping her arms around his waist, she pushed herself against him – plunging Basara’s &#039;&#039;avatar&#039;&#039; into her mouth once again.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--After that, that major historical event replayed itself vividly in Zest’s mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Making her remember – the events of Basara’s hot torrents&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;ejaculate; what comes out during ejaculation&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; flooding her, as well as--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
(…Master Basara, Master Basara, Master Basara…♥)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her swallowing it all, while calling his name countless times in her heart. With every movement she had made with her head, that viscous pleasure had poured even more of itself into her body – just that was already more than enough to bring her up to a continuous string of climaxes, plunging her whole body into overwhelming bliss, causing every single part of her to shake. At the end, as all of &#039;&#039;&#039;that&#039;&#039;&#039; flowed past Zest’s throat--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ah…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Remembering what had happened after that, a cold chill suddenly assaulted her body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—have you remembered it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As if seeing through Zest’s emotions, Sheera smiled and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You were very fierce and abrupt when you lost yourself in playing… As if this being your first time isn’t enough, you had kept harassing Basara non-stop – doing &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039; three times with your mouth, and two times with your breasts in between &#039;&#039;that&#039;&#039; – I can see that you have a really bright future ahead of you. Basara must have already accumulated a lot of &#039;&#039;damage&#039;&#039; – be thankful that you have such a strong master, okay?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………………Yes.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While embarrassed to the point of wanting to make herself disappear, Zest nodded. Even if it was while being plunged into total bliss, lusting for Basara like she had just did is just too embarrassing for her to face. But she still remembered with every eruption&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;ejaculation&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; Basara had made on Zest’s breasts and in her mouth, he would also cry out her name.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To show that he also wanted her&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;[lusted for her] is the exact translation, but might not have been the best to use. Double meaning here: [To lust for her] and [To accept her as a subordinate/servant]&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;. That’s why--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest felt her neck – there were no signs of the collar markings of the Master-Servant Contract’s curse, as well as any lingering signs of the sweet aphrodisiac. In other words, that is the best evidence to show that she had served him well and had fulfilled her responsibility of serving Basara – that’s why, she could no longer hold &#039;&#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039;&#039; back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before the gap in her memories, what she had whispered while her legs and Basara’s were entangled:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…I really did it. I finally became Master Basara’s subordinate – and family.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cuddling against the sleeping face of her very much cherished Basara, Zest whispered it again. Then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Congratulations on being reborn, Zest… As a precaution, please answer my question first.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera then continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—towards becoming Basara’s subordinate and being by his side, do you still harbour any doubt?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[None at all.] While trying to hold back her tears, Zest shook her head to answer her former master’s question.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With no more guilt towards becoming Basara’s subordinate – all that’s left in her is purely bliss.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Translator&#039;s Notes and References==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;references/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
{{SimpleNav}}&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;/noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>112.201.117.48</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>http://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Shinmai_Maou_no_Keiyakusha:Volume_5_Chapter_3&amp;diff=563999</id>
		<title>Shinmai Maou no Keiyakusha:Volume 5 Chapter 3</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="http://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Shinmai_Maou_no_Keiyakusha:Volume_5_Chapter_3&amp;diff=563999"/>
		<updated>2020-07-27T10:07:12Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;112.201.117.48: /* Part 2 */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;==Chapter 3: A New Master-Servant Contract==&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 1=== &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After a long period of time, the meeting with the Council ended.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart returned to his office, summoned a few of his trusted subordinates and notified them of the future goals requested by the Council, as well as the methods requested to achieve them. This space is filled with high-class furnishings and covered by a thick red carpet, a style that seemed befitting that of a Demon Lord’s. After Leohart explained the general decision reached at the meeting—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—to put the recently excavated spirits into battle, and defeat the Moderates Faction – is it really true?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
First to speak up, was Leohart’s aide Balthier.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can’t take it anymore… Although this is not the first time that genius Council ordered us to risk our lives, it’s too much of a headache this time…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—Luca, what’s the condition of the spirits?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The one Leohart directed his question to, is a young demon holding onto a file.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I’m very sorry… As like yesterday’s report, we managed to successfully release the seal on them, but—“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The youth called Luca lowered his eyes apologetically.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We ran into some problems when attempting to make the Master-Servant Contract with them, so we would need more time to do it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just then, a warm hand rested on Luca’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t be sad about it… After all, those spirits are relics from the Demon-God War, so being able to establish a Contact with it is already amazing, don’t look down on yourself.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gardo…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the blury male demon trying to comfort him, Luca raised his tearful eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gardo’s right, there’s nothing to blame yourself over… no need to act with undue haste.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart then said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well then – according to your estimates, how long do you need to establish a Master-Servant Contract with them?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Four days… No, two days, I will accomplish it in two days!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t I just tell you not to be too hasty… Much less sleep, you didn’t manage to get any rest these few days, right? You’re the only one able to deal with those spirits, so it’ll be bad if you get tired. This concerns our important fight – no sentimental emotions are allowed at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If your majesty says so, then I better prepare the spirits as soon as possible. No problems at all… Even if I collapse, there are many scholars proficient with ancient technology in this city.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Luca… Your majesty Leohart didn’t mean that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eh…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Balthier pointed out with a bitter smile, causing Luca to widen his round eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Indeed, there are many scholars or professors familiar with ancient technology and weapons in this city, however, the only one Leohart can trust unconditionally is you alone, Luca.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With Gardo’s explanation, Balthier also nodded and said: [That&#039;s right]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It’s great that you don’t want to disappoint your deadlines and responsibilities – although you are still young, and as one of those closest to your majesty Leohart, I trust that you are able to understand when your majesty Leohart is concerned for your health?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With Balthier’s edging, Luca finally understood what they are getting at.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……I’m sorry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No need to apologise. Everyone here knows clearly that you are giving your all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart then said while looking at the remorseful Luca with serious eyes:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“As my aide, I will not permit half-assed work and results. I will ask you once more, Luca – under a load where you can withstand, how long will you need to establish the Master-Servant Contract with the spirits?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Three, please give me three days. I will establish the Master-Servant Contract with the spirits in three days! In that time, I will also finish repairs and adjustments to their cores, and they will be ready for battle after doing some simple tests when the Contract is established.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I understand, I will trust your judgement then…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hearing Leohart’s words, Luca then replied with a bright smile: [Yes!]. Gardo then roughly stroked his head, making him shout in retaliation: [Geez! Don’t treat me like a kid!] &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Watching the interaction between Gardo and Luca—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…The spirits are settled, and next is—&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart began thinking about the other problem.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then again – just how are we supposed to materialise the ridiculous order to attack from the Council?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just then, a bitter smile appeared on Balthier’s straight face while he sighed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Although the Moderate Faction’s power and influence is nowhere near as great as in their heyday…there are still many in various parts of the Demon Realm that still hold much attachment for Wilbert. In terms of battle prowess, we are undoubtedly above the Moderates Faction -- so we have to find a justifiable 『Nominal』&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;名目: used to describe a [standard]. E.g. the nominal currency exchange rate&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; to avoid civilians protesting in the various districts.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was right. Carelessly attacking the Moderates Faction will be seen as a one-sided slaughter, inviting criticism.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A war is not purely about a battle of strength –converted political interests are deeply entangled with it. If someone with a ulterior motive were to get a chance at all – the other factions and powers that have been only observing to this day would suddenly rise in power.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Abhorrent old thieves.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Those high-class demons who have lived for a very long time and are among the Council’s ranks, no longer see anyone else as one of their kind; the civilians to them are nothing more than entertainment, the civilians’ lives does not matter at all, only their own appeasement matters. That’s why, they must be thoroughly eliminated.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Also.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart deeply believed, that only he and his comrades will be able to accomplish that big task.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hence, he had to obey the Council for now in order to preserve his position as the Demon Lord, but that didn’t mean that he had to let them have all they want.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as Leohart began to think deeply about the Nominal—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—Well, I do have a reason to make people sit by quietly and watch us attack the Moderates Faction.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Someone who had also answered to the summon but yet had remained quiet until now spoke.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That someone is Naruse Mio’s new observer after Zolgear stirred up some problems.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Someone who had entered the Human Realm with the alias Takigawa Yahiro, a youth attending the same school as Naruse Mio.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…And what would it be, Lars?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart asked, raising an eyebrow, to which Lars answered blatantly:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wilbert’s daughter – Naruse Mio, is currently within the Demon Realm.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—Are you for real?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Shrugging to Balthier who widened his eyes in disbelief, Lars answered:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What I said is indeed the truth… After Wilbert’s demise, the Moderates Faction has come to a standstill over the problem of insufficient battle potential. After those people wrecked their brains over this, their solution is to bring Naruse Mio to the Demon Realm. Although it is unclear if they will legimately crown her as a new Demon Lord or extract the power she inherited… they will want to make use of her to regain some of their former glory.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hence—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hence – we just have to take advantage of their way of thinking. The Moderates Faction wants to make use of Wilbert’s daughter and her inherited power to rule over the Demon Realm once again – we should be able to shut the other factions in the Demon Realm if we were to say that we dispatched our forces in response to their rebellion.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see… If what you say is the truth, it is indeed a reason justifiable enough to send out our troops.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hearing Leohart say so--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara, Your Majesty -- you don’t trust what your aide says?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lars replied playfully. In reply to the sarcasm from his fellow comrade from the previous war--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lars, there’s still us here -- stop using that disgusting tone.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright alright… So, do you not trust me, Leohart? That piece of information is supposed to be highly classified and even the people within the Moderates Faction don&#039;t know about it, so it’s not your fault if you doubt me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In reply to the smiling Lars, Leohart said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, I believe you -- you are a spy sent here by the Moderates Faction, so it’s normal for you to receive classified information.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart already knew long ago that Lars is a spy sent by the Moderates Faction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
How long ago? --The answer is, right from the start. Leohart had took in Lars while knowing clearly of its consequences. And Lars had accepted becoming Leohart’s subordinate while knowing clearly of what consequences that would bring. Lars’s current identity within the Current Demon Lord Faction, is that he is a newbie to the Current Demon Lord Faction who had defected from the Moderates Faction; as to the Moderates Faction, he is playing the role of a spy who successfully infiltrated the enemy’s camp. That, is the mask that Lars had voluntarily put on.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And right now -- the only ones who know of Lars’s true identity, are the few present in the room.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Is this really fine, Lars?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart then asked:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You are not only a spy sent from the Moderates Faction, but also Naruse Mio’s protector. To you who had grew up under education from the Moderates Faction, shouldn&#039;t Wilbert be your most admired person?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes, it is -- all that is already past me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[After all], Lars continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I have already personally ended Zolgear’s life, avenging my brothers… I have no more obligation left to do anything for the Moderates Faction.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s right -- it was Lars himself who told the people in this room that he ended Zolgear’s life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The reason that Leohart had sent Balthier to investigate when Zolgear’s psionic response disappeared, is because an agreement was already made with Lars beforehand. Leohart’s goal is to wipe out the old bastards of the Council -- Zolgear who was one of them had killed many who were like brothers and sisters to Lars; thus the two of them agreed that when the chance comes, Lars will personally end Zolgear’s life. Hence, when Zolgear’s psionic response disappeared, Leohart’s first guess was that Lars had successfully completed his revenge -- and had then received confirmation from him himself. Thus--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I’ve told you before, that from now onwards, I will continue to help you get rid of those leeches -- those scum no different from Zolgear, so don’t worry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There were no signs of lying at all in Lars’s words, but--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…That’s not set in stone.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart then continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lars… The reason you gave your assistance to me up till now, wasn’t it because that I, who wanted to kill those scum, could help you to personally kill Zolgear? Now that you had accomplished your objective -- isn’t it right that you have no further obligation to provide anymore assistance?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Right&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In point of fact -- you had chosen Jin Toujou’s son to work with to kill Zolgear, not me. So, shouldn’t it be natural for you to continue working with him?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haven’t I told you already? I didn’t choose him because he is better than you…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lars sighed again, and continued in a low voice:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The reason was -- if I had continued to observe and do nothing, Toujou Basara might have very well killed Zolgear himself, putting to waste my years of effort and plotting. So I had no choice but to work with him to be able to personally kill Zolgear, that’s simply all that is to it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Jin Toujou’s son has that much power?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Balthier asked doubtfully:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Marquis&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;a nobleman ranking above a count and below a duke.&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; Zolgear might have been old, but that person who had been known as 『Sword King』 was fairly powerful; and yet the youth called Toujou Basara… From your reports, he doesn’t seem to have enough power to be able to defeat Zolgear, right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Affirmative. That person’s power is indeed below that of Zolgear’s. But I think…even without my help, he would still be able to rescue Naruse Mio and defeat Zolgear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lars’ seriousness, caused the others to become silent, and then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then again -- an opportunity to personally kill Zolgear came to me just like that, so how could I possibly let it go?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lars said with a bitter smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, since that is the case, no need for anymore further speculation. Don’t worry anymore, when the Great War ended, someone had asked me to help take good care of you”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ? Just who would even do tha--“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--That would be Your Highness Riara.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lars’s answer--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Onee-sama…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart showed surprise.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Who could possibly reject her request when being asked by that smiling face? If there’s a need, we could just send the spirits I brought along with me to defeat the Moderates Faction; on the other hand, if you still want me to leave being unable to trust me, I will just obediently leave.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No need to do any of that, there will be no need for you to leave.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At Lars’s suggestions, Balthier sighed and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We have already known you for so many years since the Great War, of course I believe you -- I only fear that you would return to the Moderates Faction should you leave or take the spirits along with you. Both me and your majesty Leohart knows too well just how troublesome of a person you can be.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara, is that so?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As Lars shrugged his shoulders with a [Ah]--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Then hand the spirits over to me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A bulky figure said with a low voice -- Gardo.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“As an aide, Balthier would want to avoid leaving Leohart’s side. And since Lars is not an option, I am the only one left.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……I’m sorry, Gardo.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart lowered his eyes, and then said to the older male demon:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The one who was originally supposed to be the Demon Lord was you -- no, you&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;A more respectful version of calling someone is used here&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From the same generation of high-class demons as Leohart, Gardo’s powers and bloodline was seen to be the most suitable for the throne by the old elders not from the Council, but from the Conservative Faction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, in the process of changing the Conservative and Radicals Factions’ image that now is a new era within the Demon Realm, the old elders from the Council still chose Leohart to be on the throne.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--And Gardo had no choice but to follow their decision.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And Gardo voluntarily chose to be a subordinate of the new Demon Lord, becoming Leohart’s aide.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The edges of the lips of that selfless male curled into a smile, and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t mind it, I am also here to be a helping hand. I would of course be delighted to give my assistance to you, who wants to change the world where authority had completely fallen into the Council’s hands after Wilbert’s failed attempt to cleanse and change it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gardo…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Luca looked on worriedly, and Gardo once again patted his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“When Luca is done doing his stuff with the spirits, I will immediately head out to Wildart City with our troops -- is that decided?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course, and make sure that they can no longer do anything against us.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart nodded, and Balthier then supplemented:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I agree. If possible, deal with their leader Ramsas&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;kill&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;, and let none of them escape. He is Wilbert’s brother, and had gathered the support of many various civilians; if he is gone, the Moderates Faction will most likely collapse.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I understand -- what should I do about Wilbert’s daughter?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After pondering for a few seconds, Leohart gave a reply to Gardo in a calm voice:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Try to capture her alive. In order to obtain a power to make it possible for us to go against those old bastards in the Council, it would be for the best if we stick to the original plan and use the inherited Wilbert’s power effectively; That is something that is definitely worth us doing this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 2===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even after Ramsas had returned to the city, Mio and the rest were not brought back to that small cramped room.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It probably was to be expected. After all, it was a result of Klaus mediating.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The extravagant luxurious dinner atop the table in the luxurious dining room -- even that was assorted to all of their tastes of the food in the Human Realm, with careful and intricate seasoning and preparations -- Sheera and Klaus who was also at the table, as well as Zest and Noel who was responsible for serving them, even gave them detailed introductions for every single dish. Amongst the hospitality, Ramsas was not to be seen at the table throughout the dinner even when he was supposed to have returned to the city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--And an hour has already passed since they all had returned to their respective rooms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Accompanied by Yuki, Maria, and Kurumi, Naruse Mio appeared in a space filled with humidity and warm air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This space where the naked girls barely showed some decency, is the large bath for female guests.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This large bath filled with thin white steam, was carved from marble -- the grand and impressive facility, gave off the impression and feel of a luxurious high-class hotel or hostel.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Such amazing places to take a bath are rare. It’s a pity that Basara had to be absent from this.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Otherwise, they could just announce to the people in the city who they are.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Basara had rejected that idea while giving a bitter smile, saying that he didn’t want to provoke the people in the city for no reason, and Mio could only just give up on it. Now -- Mio is sitting on a chair by the wall at the washing area, preparing to wash herself, but--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Then, Mio-sama, please excuse me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Saying that from behind Mio’s back is Noel with only a towel wrapped around her. To the ones like Ramsas, she would be of no further use once Wilbert’s power within her is extracted -- but to the ones like Klaus who wished to crown her as a Demon Lord, Mio is the most important VIP they have; thus they even sent a group of people to serve them, from the flushing of the bath to the adjusting of the water’s temperature, to washing them; of course Mio and the others strongly rejected it saying that they wouldn’t be able to relax, but as the other party strongly insisted they receive the proper treatment -- they compromised, letting Noel who they had spent time with touring the downtown areas serve them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah… Sorry to trouble you, Noel.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Mio nodded, and Noel made a obeisance&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;a gesture expressing deferential respect, such as a bow or curtsy&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; with a [Yes]. Firstly using the warm water in the wooden barrel to wash herself, Noel then began washing Mio’s back while creating foam. The maids of the royals and noble were gentle in washing people in order to not damage the skin, and Noel was no different, but--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Eh! Ah…..aaaoo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When the slippery sensation moved across her back, Mio wasn’t able to stem her sexy moans.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I&#039;m only just washing your back… Mio-sama is sensitive? I did hear that Mio-sama had made a Master-Servant Contract with Basara using Maria’s powers, is this related to that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-Well, that…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Mio turned red with Noel’s teasing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Why, am I…!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the joy of being able to take a bath in another Realm, Mio forgot to prepare herself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--Since the time she had made the Master-Servant Contract with Basara, Mio’s sexiness had been developing with each and every time Basara subjugated her, and right now her body has already become incredibly sensitive; but even then, there was no problems at all while taking a bath in her own home. She could control how much force to use while bathing by herself. But there were many times she had to take a bath together with Basara and Yuki as a result of Maria&#039;s plots, and adding on the fact that she had experienced her body being thoroughly washed by Basara many times, she would occasionally accidentally let slip some of the reaction she had in those times.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Could it be that the reason you reduced the number of people serving you, was because you were afraid of people finding out about this? To tell the truth, there was no need for you to worry about that at all…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! …Any more of that, and I will drive you out.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Being glared at by Mio in embarrassment, Noel giggled and said: [I’m very sorry], and then once again began washing Mio quietly. Naturally, a maid wouldn’t just wash Mio’s back, but also her underarms, breasts, butts, hips -- all of that.&amp;quot; Noel scrubbed all of those parts.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! …Ah …Fu ……Ah …Ya …Ah!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Mio began biting her lips in desperation to endure it, but that wasn’t enough to stop her gasps and moans from escaping, and--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Don’t worry. All these, are completely incomparable to when Basara does it himself…!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s right. The techniques used were all completely different when Basara was playing with her body. He was always very bold yet cautious, with love and affection within his unyieldingness -- even if he was very rough, he would never let someone be in pain.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Noel wouldn’t be able to raise her lewd side like Basara did.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…If it was Basara instead, it might have been…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara’s big hands, Basara’s solid chest, Basara’s flair to deliver mindblowing pleasure, and especially Basara&#039;s warmth that relaxed her the most -- thinking about what he had done in the past, what Noel is doing in comparison gives her only slight embarrassment, itches, and some moans that she couldn’t stem; after all, Basara had washed her breasts, underarms, belly button, and even her butt before. Thus, Mio restored her calm and handed over her body to Noel’s washing, and after that came her long hair. Her combing, was just as comfortable at it being done in a salon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Umm, Mio-sama…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just then, Noel suddenly said that, causing Mio to suddenly become vigilant, thinking that she was about to tease her again. But--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“May I ask, how is Lars doing?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lars… Are you talking about Takigawa?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The impression of Takigawa was too strong, making her unable to connect him to his original name.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well… He seems to get along with Basara pretty well, since he spends a lot of time in school with him. Probably because they’re like-minded, those two boys mess around a lot.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But after finding out that Takigawa was the one behind that white mask, Mio and Yuki weren’t very happy. As Takigawa said some cruel words to reopen the wound in his heart while he was critically injured, both of them are still unable to forgive him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Why do you suddenly ask…? Do you know him?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Yes. Lars and I grew up in the same orphanage.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From her tone, it was easy to guess what kind of emotions Noel held for Takigawa.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…It’s the same as me.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She has had the same thoughts when she found out Basara and Takigawa and joined hands in the shadows.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just like when she found out that Maria and Basara had been out in the nights hunting rouge evil beings.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The wanting to ask, just why, were they doing such dangerous things without telling her. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But Mio couldn’t. Because for Mio, Basara putting himself in danger wasn’t for any reason other than protecting her. If Takigawa hadn’t helped; Sheera, who was taken captive by Zolgear, would probably have already been killed. The reason Maria could escape from that tragic ending, was because Basara joined hands with Takigawa. Because of that, Mio couldn’t say anything about it to Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It’s just -- right now, there was a way to erase Noel’s pain, and the key lies within Mio’s hands. So after her hair was washed--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Noel, I--“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Mio turned around, to say something to Noel -- but at that time, someone entered the washing area and sat down on the chair beside Mio. The dissemination of transparent beauty, is Yuki who had also made the same Master-Servant Contract with Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--I’ll be using this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Without looking at either of them directly in the eye, Yuki began to wash herself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even without anyone saying anything, the atmosphere began to become awkward.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Umm, Mio-sama …I shall not interrupt you any further.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From behind Mio’s back, Noel said so as if she had done something wrong, and stood up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please do enjoy our bath, and eliminate fatigue from your body… I will be awaiting orders in the changing room -- Yuki&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Miss Yuki is used here, like the many places in the text&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;, please excuse me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While washing her body, Yuki nodded, and hence Noel left the bath after giving a bow. And then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--You’re thinking that by going to ask Klaus yourself, you can cancel Takigawa’s spying mission, right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hearing Yuki say snappily--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I only just…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Mio lowered her head evasively.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We did not request for a luxurious room or meal, it was all things that they had prepared; so even if they ask us to reciprocate them, we can reject them. However, once we make any request, the situation would be different; if we were asked to reciprocate, it would be difficult for us to reject them. And more importantly -- doing that would be the same as exposing our weak point.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Have you forgotten?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;The demon called Klaus was one of Wilbert’s advisers, a strategist once called the 『Virtuous Elder』. The luxurious rooms, meal, and dining hall and the grand welcoming, all of those were all a performance to make you agree to become the new Demon Lord. If you were to let those people know that you are someone able to sympathise with them, do you even know what the consequences are? If you do not want Takigawa to have an even more dangerous mission, if you want to fulfil the wish of a maid worrying for her childhood sweetheart -- the moment he grabs onto an emotion he can use to make his attack on you, he’ll immediately attempt to use it to make a negotiation or transaction; and if it still isn’t possible, he might even utilise threats…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Stopping here, Yuki turned to look at Kurumi who is bathing together with the loli succubus.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Threats like sending away Maria from your side, and making her carry out suicidal missions are entirely possible -- and since her mother and older sister are here, Maria cannot reject any orders.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………I’m sorry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unable to retort -- Mio lowered her head remorsefully.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No need to apologise… It’s just, I hope that you don’t forget that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And as if giving advice, Yuki then said to Mio:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Even if you still hadn&#039;t decided what to do with Wilbert’s power, I guess that you had already reached a conclusion regarding the identity of 『Naruse Mio』, so don’t go forgetting that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, Mio then nodded in agreement.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Ah, you’re right… I got it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now, she is not the daughter of the previous Demon Lord, but Basara&#039;s family, his sister -- as well as his servant.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
No matter what happens, being by his side is a must. That, is Naruse Mio’s only desire.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And for that very desire, all of them must return to that home one day. Just then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It’s fine if you get it, and I will also think of something to help you out -- because that is also Basara’s wish.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Yuki also quickly expressed to Mio’s agreement. In Mio’s heart, Yuki is a rival she must never fall behind -- but she was also a comrade who could understand more than anyone. Thus--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Thank you, Yuki.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Feeling more at ease, Mio expressed her thanks, mixing in a shade of threatening.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No need for thanks… Oh, that’s right--“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Holding out a towel from the foamy bucket towards Mio, Yuki then said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Mio, help me wash my back.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Towards the tone that of an older sister commanding a younger sister, Mio widened her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Probably giving some advice made her somewhat cocky. Thus Mio smiled and--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You have a really high price tag…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Took that towel and after going behind Yuki, she began scrubbing her back -- not using the towel, but with her hands instead.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The one who had been subjugated by Basara and had her sensitivity raised a lot by him was not Mio alone. That’s why--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Yaaaaaaahhhhhhh!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Yuki let out a cute scream, while jumping up from the stool.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While soaking in the bath, Nonaka Kurumi saw her older sister in the washing area suddenly jump up while screaming.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And then collapse to the floor onto her butt.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『………』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silently turning around to look at Mio who had a victor’s smile on her face, Yuki made her counterattack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After pushing Mio down onto the floor and while straddling over her, she began to violently knead those large breasts.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『 ! ---- 』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Mio screamed, and arched her back under Yuki, and then her two hands began to do the same things to Yuki’s butt, not wanting to be outdone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『 ----! 』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And it was Yuki’s turn to react to a sudden kneading -- the two girls thus began waging a war over their pride. Seeing those two older sisters like that--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
‘’It’s better if I don’t invite trouble onto myself.’’  From within the bath, Kurumi turned around to have her back face the washing area Yuki and Mio were at.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And proceeded to take a stretch in the bath&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;the one where people stretch their backs after waking up in the morning&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;, letting the warmth of the water fill her. Comfortably exhaling a deep breath, she then scooped some water with her hands. The slightly blue hot spring, seemed to have been drawn directly from underground, so it naturally would have rather high demonic concentrations. However--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Ah, it seems to have much less of a load on me now.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Comparing to when she had just arrived in the Demon Realm, the level of discomfort she felt back then now seemed to have been just a dream. Although her getting used to the demonic concentrations had a hand in that, it was not the main reason. Thus--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kurumi raised her left hand from the water and held it out, and gathered her consciousness towards it, and her gauntlet for controlling spirits then materialised. Within some of the notches in the gauntlet, balls of various colours have been inserted. Those were elements needed for communicating with the spirits.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--Right now, there were a few black balls that weren’t there before.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In Lucia’s office, Basara had turned the imbroglio&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;a confused heap; an extremely confused, complicated, or embarrassing situation&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; in her heart into happiness and pleasure and subjugated her, disentangling her emotions -- when she opened her eyes, Kurumi realised that she was on a bed in another room.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing Maria sleeping while snuggled up against her, she then remembered what Basara had done to her, she then became a ball of internal struggles. At that time, Lucia came to that room and upon seeing her situation, Lucia then said to the alert Kurumi in a cold and indifferent tone: [Thank you for being friends with Maria], and gave a certain something to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That something was these black elementals. These black elementals had the protection of high-class spirits in the Demon Realm, which thus allowed Kurumi to communicate with spirits not bound with a Master-Servant Contract while using spirit magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And with the protection of high-class spirits, the difficulty of borrowing a spirits’ power was lowered a lot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For Kurumi who had not made a Master-Servant Contract with Basara and was unable to increase her battle potential by deepening her relationship with him, this was help coming to her when she needed it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia is part of the Moderates Faction and is a demon, and she is the aide of Ramsas who gave the cold shoulder to Mio. That, made Kurumi put up some resistance towards Lucia in the beginning, but accepted her in the end. Reason being, her pride as a hero is not what’s most important now, but it was instead not becoming a burden to Basara and the others.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thus for the period of time while she was in the Demon Realm, she hoped to at least be able to use it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…To think that I would begin to think like this…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If it was the her in the past, it would be unthinkable for her to live together with Maria who lived together with the surveillance target Naruse Mio, much less fight alongside her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Also,&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In their daily life, Maria seemed to be putting her in embarrassing situations every day, and she could only just accept it since she wanted to not be left behind. In fact, not just Maria – it would be even Basara or Yuki sometimes. And that is the reason why Kurumi has become the way she is now, boldly doing lewd and lecherous things in Lucia’s office, exposing her incredibly debaucherous side.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Speaking of which – no matter how embarrassing it has become, rejecting any of that is not an option.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;..So it really seems that the truth is I don’t really hate those kind of things…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just like Mio and Yuki, Kurumi is slowly becoming more and more lewd.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And it’s not only that. Kurumi had turned an event she thought was only possible in her dreams into reality today, to have a kiss with Basara. Although her first time was in her dream, and doing it in reality was only to satisfy Lucia, Kurumi still did automatically move her lips to kiss with Basara’s lips – indulging in her sexuality in her tongue filled with emotions, lusting for Basara’s existence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From the moment when their lips made contact, the warmth and pleasure she received from Basara still remained fresh in Kurumi’s mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kurumi suddenly turned red from the embarrassment and brought her face back into the water partially, while blowing bubbles and not realising that someone was sneaking up on her—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…--My dear Kurumi~♪”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eeeaahhhh!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly being hugged from behind by Maria, Kurumi let out a high-pitched scream.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Oi, don’t go about scaring me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara, weren’t you the one who seemed miffed and ignored me, making a certain someone very lonely~…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Y-You, would you be looking over there – at the place older sis and Mio are?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria giggled and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course I would, but just me alone doing that would be very boring, and that’s why I came over here to enjoy it together with you – just like usual times when we enjoyed erotic films together~.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-Weren’t you the one who forced me to watch them, saying that it was For Academic Purposes…!”&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;most likely a reference to F.A.P. – [F]or [A]cademic [P]urposes; masturbation material search&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“And I wasn’t wrong at all… That’s why this is also research material.”&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;the aforementioned material&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And with a captivating smile, Maria began to massage Kurumi’s breasts and started licking her neck.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At Maria’s assault, Kurumi attempted to put up her death struggle, trying to shake off Maria while flailing her arms about on the water surface, but failing in the end.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hu fufu… You’ve been through this so many times, but you’re just as shy as your first time… Kurumi is really cute~.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With burning flames of passion visible within her eyes, Maria then said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Come, Kurumi. Give me your underarms, expose your underarms&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;underarms / armpit&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;. I want to fill up your weakness with my saliva.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Shit. If this continues, I will fall into one of Maria’s seasoned traps.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And thus, Kurumi turned her line of sight towards the washing area Mio and Yuki were at, hoping for rescue.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Despite her attention leaving that area for only a slight moment, the situation there has already changed a lot. With foam covering their bodies, they were still assaulting each other’s weak spots while gasping and panting heavily, with no intention of giving up at all; they’ve not gotten into the hot spring yet, but their eyes have already become lifeless, voices weak, and skins pink. Of course, they’re completely oblivious to Kurumi’s predicament. When Maria saw that Kurumi now had no one else to turn to for help—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Fufufu, it’s too bad …Come, give it up and let me lick you, you lewd girl hero~”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ !&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;~~~~~~&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As Maria’s lips got closer, Kurumi’s eyes also widened as usual in anticipation of the assault of pleasure.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ah? What’s that elemental, I’ve never seen that colour there before.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria then suddenly noticed those black elementals set into her gauntlet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Which then made Kurumi remember -- what Lucia had said before when she gave them to her. Back then, Lucia had said—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『Please continue to look after my little sister. 』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She did look at the Maria sleeping beside her when she said that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thus, entrusted with looking after Maria, she asked those black elementals to also look after her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, a magic pattern opened up on the floor—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eh--…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the moment Maria let out a weird sound upon seeing that – the loli succubus flew out from the bath together with a large amount of bathwater, colliding with Mio and Yuki by the wall in the washing area, and also sending the stools and bucket flying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-W-What happened!? What’s that loud noise!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Noel frantically rushed into the bath, but Kurumi remained silent, and then got out from the bath quickly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will definitely use it well with much gratitude…Hmph!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Throwing that out behind her, Kurumi then left the bath area on her own first.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 3===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After having dinner alone within his own room, Ramsas left the room, and came to a certain place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A place that can allow one to look over the city with just a single glance – the top of the main tower, which is the city’s highest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Having arrived at that place, Ramsas looked down at the illuminated streets quietly. About fifteen minutes later—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You insisted on not seeing Mio-sama even once… Is this really for the best?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Coming to place after a while, Lucia asked him. Hearing his faithful subordinate’s question, Ramsas then answered in a low voice while not moving his sight from the city areas:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Why should I go and see her?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And with that, Lucia decided to not say anymore, and after giving a bow, she moved back and left Ramsas alone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, Ramsas continued standing while the night wind continued to blow.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Ramsas’s eyebrow twitched slightly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An unnatural change in the night wind’s currents just occurred, and it was at a degree where a normal person wouldn’t notice – there was a pair of eyes, looking at Ramsas from behind him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--It was not Lucia, and not one of the maids serving under her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, some more changes to his surroundings occurred. Sounds of footsteps as if announcing a person’s existence, slowly neared him. Then—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—do you know? There is a place like this platform at where Mio and us live, a place that allows you to look over the nightscape of a city.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Saying those words while standing beside Ramsas, was a youth – Toujou Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Likely, Lucia wasn’t the one who had told this youth of this place; no matter who it was, someone was still being nosy. While looking at the view Ramsas, who had decided not to pursue the matter, was looking at, Basara said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This afternoon… The maid Noel&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Miss Noel&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; had brought us into the city to look around. The view that can be seen from here, is what your younger brother – and you who had took over his work, protected to this day.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing Ramsas return silence as an answer, Basara turned around slowly--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In what you want to protect, why did you not include Mio?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And spit out those words filled with a dark shade.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“After your younger brother died – Zolgear killed his subordinates whom he had trusted to bring up Mio. Although Maria had managed to rescue Mio in a critical moment from Zolgear’s palm, Zolgear had taken Sheera, and then coerced Maria into following his orders…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[But]. Basara said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“According to Takigawa – Lars, you were well aware of this situation, yet you chose to remain quiet and observe, right? No matter how others asked you to prioritise Mio, you still chose to not provide more assistance. Other than Maria who had been coerced by Zolgear, as well as Takigawa who had infiltrated the Current Demon Lord Faction and could not make any obvious moves, you had sent no more help to assist the two with the mission of protecting Mio.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;So why?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Mio is the daughter of your younger brother… In other words, she is your niece. So why did you choose to not make any moves despite knowing that she is faced with such clear danger?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Being questioned with a firm gaze from Basara, Ramsas finally spoke to answer him – he bluntly said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—because there wasn’t a need to at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No need to…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara had already known Ramsas is cold towards Mio.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His reason for still doing all this, was basically just to clarify it all. The truth and reality was just as Lucia had said. Considering that Ramsas has his own set of difficulties and opinions, if Basara would be able to hear about them, he might be able to somewhat understand even if he can’t agree with it. However – Ramsas words just now, was still completely beyond Basara’s expectations.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“There was still no need even when Maria had no choice but to betray Mio after worrying to no end from being coerced by Zolgear? There was still no need even when Mio had been abducted and have who-knows-what done by Zolgear to her? After all these incidents, are you really going to say that there’s no need to increase her protection?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Since the reports have said that she’s completely safe, is there really a need to ask for more?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That was because we…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To be able to safely rescue Mio, they all had racked their brains and struggled with their lives. Viewing it from another angle, perhaps being able to save Mio before she was ruined by Zolgear, as well as safely rescuing Sheera who was taken hostage, was the best possible result. However – if back then Ramsas had accepted Klaus and his other subordinates’ views to take effective actions like increasing the amount of protection, then perhaps the incident of Mio being abducted by Zolgear might have never happened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Additionally, Takigawa even knew where Zolgear was hiding, to the point where he even knew where Sheera was being kept hostage; if he had sent out his elite forces to launch an attack, the culprit known as Zolgear might have already been exterminated long ago. But he hadn’t, so he definitely has no right to speak about it – just as Basara gave his retort while becoming mad, Ramsas finally looked at him, and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You guys – how was it? From what I know, the main reason Zolgear had retreated in his defeat was not because of you guys, but it was Wilbert’s daughter who let her powers go berserk, right? Even if the reason for it going berserk was due to thinking that Sheera had been killed, she would’ve put up a great opposition if Zolgear were to casually make any moves against her. With that, even if you and those girls you knew since you were small weren’t there, she would still be saved in the end. Would that way of thinking be wrong?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Perhaps it might not have been wrong. Even if he hadn’t done anything Mio and Sheera might still be saved.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;However&#039;&#039; – Basara then said wile heavily emphasising:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Those kind of words, can only be said by the people like us who had taken real action to save Mio and the others – people like you who had just remained standing by the sides and did nothing better than try to score points now that that is already over.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara seems to have hit a sore area, and Ramsas remained quiet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…I have no intention of questioning whether your decision was right or wrong. The result in the end was as you said: Mio and Sheera are safe, and Maria and Zest escaped from Zolgear’s control. What I would like to question instead, is if you had intentionally disregarded Mio.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara then continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But, that’s already enough – I already understand it. Originally, I had even speculated if you had given Mio this attitude because your views were different &lt;br /&gt;
from your younger brother… but no matter what you say, I wouldn’t accept it. I have already made the decision to protect Mio – the one who had become my little sister, a person who is part of my family. So no matter how big or noble of a reason or excuse you give me, it’s not my business at all, and doing any of that would be completely meaningless.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—so, do you want to follow Klaus’s words, and let that girl become the next Demon Lord?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the question Ramsas asked in a low tone, Basara shook his head and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No… Klaus&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Mr. Klaus&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; has been very sincere to us, thinking for our sakes at first glance – but he just wants to take advantage of the story that Mio is the only daughter of the previous Demon Lord who had inherited his power, completely ignoring if she has the qualifications to do so and her own will, treating her as only a political tool.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
All Mio wants is to be a normal girl, who lives a peaceful life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And having sent her away from his side to live a peaceful life in the Human Realm that too is also all Wilbert wants.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And yet – Klaus who claims to respect and love Wilbert, disregarded his lord’s wishes, and is pushing for Mio to be a new Demon Lord. Reportedly, the current Demon lord also seems to have been given the throne to become a chess piece by the Council, so the two sides can be said to be equal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Also,&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With his lord’s daughter, the one who had made a Master-Servant Contract being the son of the number one enemy in the Great War, Klaus was especially kind towards Basara to the point where it seemed completely unnatural. Who knows, even the matter of Mio who had no choice but to make a Master-Servant Contract might be taken advantage of; making it into a story where thanks to Wilbert sending troops to put a stop to the Great War, they finally managed to create good relations between the son of the scary [God of War] Jin from the Hero Tribe and the only daughter of the Demon Lord, turning it into another of Wilbert’s achievements.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Both routes are equally bad.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To put it bluntly, all that side wanted are personal benefits – the reason Toujou Basara is unable to accept them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Absolutely.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I do understand that both you and Klaus have your own thoughts and plans, and that the subordinates within the Moderates Faction respect the opinions of you higher-ups. However – you all just want to take advantage of Mio, with no shred of consideration to the person in question. In Mio’s moments of great pain, you refused to lend a hand despite knowing about it, and Klaus followed that decision and stood by idly, both sides are the same. And so from my viewpoint, you all are just trash.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since the moment they were called to the Demon Realm to till now, Basara had submitted to the humiliation, but he could not take it any longer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And so he spit it all out:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I’ll put it bluntly. You guys shouldn’t have called her here, only to just put her aside. You guys had always been ignoring and snubbing her for so long… and now that in order to win against the Current Demon Lord Faction you demand for her presence or for her to hand over her inherited power to you? Stop cracking jokes. That power was given to the one he had not hesitated to separate with by your younger brother to protect herself. Because of her circumstances, Mio has already given up a lot of things; that has to stop.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Listen carefully.&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We will no longer hold anymore hopes and anticipate anything more from you. So at least, stop taking things away from her. To Mio, that power is a gift from her own father, the only bond between them – you guys basically have no rights or authority to intervene in that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ramsas silently listened to Basara ranting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…So this is the son of &#039;&#039;&#039;that man&#039;&#039;&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;I see.&#039;&#039; The report had said that he was exiled from the Hero&#039;s [Tribe], and now I can understand why. This youth, is really indeed not suited to be a Hero.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…He’s far too naive.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ramsas wanted to let this youth carried away in the heat of the moment know of something called ‘Reality’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The lives of the Royal Family do not belong to themselves, they live for the people, and die for the people – not even a single person can escape from that blood tie. Since that girl is Wilbert’s daughter, she is part of the Royal Family, thus she has a duty to dedicate her life for the people.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I’ve said this already, you guys had cast her aside for so long, and yet now you want to use 『Because she is Royalty』 as a reason is just too—“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—Originally living a civilian’s life, and then only to have that life taken away due to the sudden revelation of Royal blood ties; all that is not uncommon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Additionally&#039;&#039; – Ramsas continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Although Klaus and I think and do things differently, the both of us have a duty to protect everything here as the ones who stand over the people. Since you guys had walked through the streets in the evening, you should’ve already seen it clearly. In reality, you protecting that girl like that – could just very well turn all that you saw and everyone you have met on the streets into dust, do you understand?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course I d—“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And Ramsas bluntedly said to Basara trying to refute:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then why are you still being persistent… Then again, you just said that that girl had already given up a lot of things… but she was living happy days in a place unrelated to the political wrangling and fights; that, was thanks to her being Wilbert’s daughter. Now we have a need for her who had lived because of Wilbert’s death, so he called her back – it was just that her time ran out, and that it was time to say goodbye to the unneeded necessity to acknowledge her bloodline and the disregarding of her responsibility.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! ……”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara, whose expression, became complicated—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What you said, was something I cannot completely agree with. You had said, that that girl doesn’t even know that she doesn’t have the qualification, and shouldn’t become the Demon Lord—“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And Ramsas resolutely replied:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is correct. That girl who had tied a Master-Servant Contract with a little brat like you who had been expelled from the Hero [Tribe], who had let herself become a lowly sensual bondage slave; someone like that has no right to become a Demon Lord, and that’s why I wanted her to just obediently hand over Wilbert’s power.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, the atmosphere suddenly changed. Basara’s fighting intent aimed at Ramsas, became even more incisive and cold.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It became blatant killing intent. Then—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Take it back… If not—“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara’s right hand went towards Ramsas, and at that moment—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--That’s enough.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Shinmai_v05_095.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Countless numbers of guns were then aimed at Basara’s throat, held by the maidservants who had surrounded them. Commanding these maidservants armed with weapons, Lucia came to Ramsas’s side—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It’s already difficult enough to overlook the various insults towards Ramsas-sama – if you continue to show disrespect, you shall not be forgiven even if you are Mio-sama and Maria’s saviour.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And said coldly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara remained quiet, and lowered his head. But—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;---------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;?』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The maidservants holding Basara at gunpoint suddenly received a shock, and their bodies tense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rather than decreasing, Basara’s killing intent further increased, and then—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Insults… insults, you said? Those should be my words. Having heard Mio – hearing my own little sister receiving that kind of insult, do you really think this warning is enough to push me over and make me leave it as it is?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As if ignoring the maidservants surrounding him, light appeared in his right hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And his own weapon appeared from the light—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……It’s a shame. I had thought you were smarter than that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia’s eyes narrowed, and just as she was about to give her orders—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“---Kay kay,   ~Th-a-t’s – e-nou-gh ♪”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An extremely hearty voice cut into the tense atmosphere from the side.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ramsas’s head turned, and found Sheera with Zest behind her standing there,&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Mother-sama…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia frowned while looking at her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lucia-ya… If you were to start fighting here, Mio&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;[Chinese]little sis, she refers to Basara and the rest like her little siblings, like the previous chapters&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; and the others would immediately find out, and what would you do if they were to come running over? Even if you are able to incapacitate Basara before they realise, the matter that you argued with him would still come to light. Mio and Yuki both had made the Master-Servant Contract with Basara, so throwing him into the dungeons would be useless.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then—“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—you’ll create a barrier, so that they won’t realise?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera smiled at Lucia preparing a retort and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It’ll be useless. Doing so will only increase their suspicions, and you won’t be able to get Mio’s assistance in the end, are you fine with that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing Lucia become unable to retort, Sheera’s line of sight turned to Basara and she said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Basara, you too should stop making a scene. If you were to start fighting now with Lucia or Ramsas, you won’t be able to make them back down even if you win. It’s great that you love your little sister Mio so much, but if she were to find out you got hurt when you flared up for her sake – she’ll blame herself. Are you still fine with that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera’s words caused Basara to become silent – and he retracted his killing intent soon after, his weapon also disappearing. Seeing this, Sheera smiled and said: [Good Boy.] The maidservants also seemed to relax. Finally, Sheera looked at Ramsas and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well then, I’ll be bringing Basara away – is it fine?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Do as you like.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[Okay.] Hearing Ramsas say so, Sheera immediately brought Basara away together with Zest, disappearing into the house&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;house/castle&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—Ramsas-sama, I’m very sorry, for my mother’s impertinence.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia lowered her head and apologised—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It’s fine… It isn’t that person’s first time creating trouble.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, Ramsas looked out towards the city once again.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Dots of light from the city was spread throughout the city, the stars illuminating the night sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 4===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After being brought away from the platform Ramsas and the others were at by Sheera, Toujou Basara, was then brought to a certain place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That place, is the bath for male guests’ use. He had already taken a bath before coming to the Demon Realm, and right now he wanted to be alone, so he got ready to reject taking a bath, but—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—Right now you are still mad at Ramsas, do you really think you can fall asleep?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was still unable to retort against Sheera. Many things have happened since he entered the Demon Realm, and apart from the nervousness he was expecting, he probably accumulated some stress from things that had went beyond what he was expecting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although relaxing to the point where he would put down his guard must be avoided at all costs, he can’t really see how much longer they would have to stay in the Demon Realm according to the current situation; being too nervous would only cause his concentration to wane, and things would be dire if he were to not be at his best due to wear when needed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And thus, Basara finally accepted Sheera’s suggestion and got ready to take a bath, but--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……For some reason, I knew it would turn out like this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This mother before him is known to be even more mischievous than Maria, due to her following her succubus instincts more than half the time, and so she had followed Basara into the bath as expected. Needless to say, Zest too was also present in the males’ bath.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sitting naked on a stool before Basara, Sheera was trying to suppress her giggles while saying:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well, that’s obvious… Zest&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;calling Zest her imouto&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; is a maidservant serving Basara, while I am her superior. I’m just here to supervise the maid-in-training while she does her duties to ensure that she is serving you well~.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Amazing…&#039;&#039; She is completely different to Maria who always brags, being able to so easily turn a lie into the truth. Completely masterful.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What if after Maria grows up, what would happen if she turns out just like Sheera? As a touch of anxiety crossed Basara’s mind--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Well then, here comes your punishment.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest said that, and then began washing his back -- with her large matured breasts.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Hold it right there! Why are you doing it so naturally!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara couldn’t help but to turn around, only to find a naked foamy Zest say tearfully:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I’m very sorry… I’m still not used to these kind of things, did I hurt you?”&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;cause you pain?&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uhh, no… That wouldn’t.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;A question: Which male would ever experience pain from being rubbed against a female’s breasts?&#039;&#039; --  that, is one question Basara very much wanted to scream out, but was unable to thanks to Zest seemingly blaming herself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I&#039;m very sorry Basara&amp;lt;Mr.&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;… Sheera-sama had told me that this was how to help wash a Master, and had even intricately thought me how to do so. This is just my inability to master the art.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I understand… It’s fine, and you’re doing it not too bad -- no, the problem does not lie with you at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After hurriedly consoling Zest behind him, he then stared at Sheera who was before him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sheera… Just what in the world did you teach Zest?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara, Basara, don’t make such a scary face… Is anything wrong?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera then boasted while smiling:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I honestly don’t know what else a woman would use when washing a male… I guess that this must be the fault of the differences between the cultures of Demons and Humans.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, no matter how you think about it, it only exists within the culture of you succubi.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Hurry up and apologise to the other races making up the Demons Race, you loli succubus Mom.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, is there something known as 『Local Customs』 in the Human Realm? Over here, of course you would have to accept the customs of our culture, isn’t that right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Rather than [Local], it feels more like I’ve entered an urn.” &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt; Rather than customs of a community, it seems more like ones that of a cult&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Too deep…&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;It&#039;s starting to get spiritual&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If you insist, it would be fine if you want to wash yourself…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera then made an apologetic face,&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But that means your maid isn&#039;t doing her job… Later I will have to hand Zest a punishment -- the kind that is especially painful.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…………I get it already. Alright, Zest… I’ll be counting on you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It’s as if Basara did a bad deed, yet Zest exultantly answered and once again began to use her soft breasts to scrub Basara’s body. &#039;&#039;Crap…&#039;&#039; That softness, is just too damn comfortable, and there are just only subtle differences from those others who would use their breasts to help Basara wash himself. Once again, Basara experienced just how unique the breasts of every person are. If his thinking were to go any further, his own rationality would be in danger -- in order to try to not set the national holiday or prime number&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Chinese language puns, referring to an erection&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;, Basara tried to scatter his focus.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ah~? Basara seems to be very calm…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[How boring]. When Sheera said that, Toujou Basara sighed:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I’m so very sorry… I’m starting to become used to these kinds of situations.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Arara, what shocking words, to be able to get used to a girl scrubbing you with her breasts…? You’ve become a hero at such a young age.&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Not the real hero in this story. The Hero of Youths, one who is able to ‘control’ his own libido&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eighty percent of it are the fruits of the labour of your daughter…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Up to now, both Yuki and Mio who had a Master-Servant Contract with Basara had often used their breasts to scrub his body, thanks to Maria’s ‘wonderful’ suggestions. In order to induce jealousy which would then activate the curse to send them into an aroused state, Maria too would also sometimes demonstrate for them to see; later, Kurumi too was also dragged into this activity -- the remaining twenty percent, belongs to the infirmary teacher Hasegawa who was an exception. It was only Hasegawa, who had not made a Master-Servant Contract with him and had no need to increase battle potential, who was not dragged helplessly into this by Maria, and had willingly and voluntarily done that kind of thing with Basara. Just then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Please excuse me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Saying that from behind his back, Zest’s hands which had been embracing Basara’s abdomen suddenly descended, slipping under the towel wrapped around his waist.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-Hold on, Zest! I can wash that place myself!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I’m very sorry…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara’s suddenly screamed, causing Zest to hurriedly withdraw her hands from shock, but in that moment--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Don’t stop and continue, Zest.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A cold voice that could send chills sounded out within the warm bath. Though Basara wanted to retort with a [Stop joking around!] -- he wasn’t able to. Reason being, Sheera was releasing pressure that seemed impossible from her small loli body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Even if the other party wants to do it themselves, this is supposed to be a maidservants’ duty and reason for existence… &#039;&#039;&#039;Continue.&#039;&#039;&#039;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey --…Haven’t I already said that there is no need to?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Gulping, Basara then managed to force out some resistance, but--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Aren’t you just denying the reason for a maid’s existence, Basara, just like saying 『I don’t need you following me』? Speaking of which, you seem to be misunderstanding something…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera continued coldly:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It was my order for Zest to serve you. Zest is my maidservant, her master is not you, but me; If I order her to wash another male’s body, she will…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And then gave a cold laugh.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Even if she has to help wash those soldiers who would harass her, she will still do so if it is my order. That is the duty of a maid whose duty is to serve people.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Those words caused discomfort within his heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Cracking that kind of joke is just too cruel… If that happens, I wouldn&#039;t let Zest continue to be your maidservant.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But the thing is, you don’t have the authority to do so, Basara. You had handed Zest over for us to handle her which is why she is now my maidservant… And so, regarding her all, my word is absolute. The one who had created this result is you -- the decision you had made at the beginning.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara anxiously tried to form a rebuttal -- Basara had told Zest before that if anything happens, she can return to the Toujou Household anytime, as he had judged that she would be able to escape from the Demon Realm with her power. However, those words were just merely for Zest, and wasn’t approved by Sheera. Seeing Basara beginning to turn pale--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How selfish… Ignoring her life and death normally, and then suddenly wishing everyone to be happy when you see her.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera continued while making a caustic&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;sarcastic in a scathing and bitter way&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; smile:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t tell me -- you haven’t realised that Zest is isolated and helpless in this city?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara remained silent, as he did vaguely have that sort of feeling. Other than Sheera or Lucia, he had not seen anyone else in the city speak with Zest; while visiting the city areas, Noel also doesn’t seem to be familiar with Zest -- and from Noel’s personality, it might perhaps have been that way because of pressure from the higher-ups. For Zest who was part of the Current Demon Lord Faction to find a place for her in the Moderates, it really isn’t an easy task. Just then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--I would also like to remind you, that Zest’s position and situation would also very likely be going downhill some more.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera said something that can’t be ignored.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What do you mean?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you still not get it? No matter if Mio in the end decides to go with the wishes of either Ramsas or Klaus, that final decision will definitely cause resentment in the other party. Adding on that you had just stupidly went to argue with Ramsas saying that you won’t accept both sides’ wishes, would there still be anyone within the Moderates Faction that would still treat you as one of them?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If that’s the case--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Even if you all are able to safely make it back to the Human Realm… I believe it wouldn’t be difficult to guess who would be the one baring their fangs at you, right? After all, weren’t you the ones who asked us to handle Zest?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara said in a low voice, groaning. He had never thought about it -- that protesting for Mio would bring about the worsening of Zest’s circumstances. As Basara became speechless--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“All these are the results of the decisions you guys have made. The you right now, have no authority at all to stop Zest from doing anything… If you still want Zest to listen and obey you no matter what, and not let her be in danger of being tarnished by someone she wants to--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera giggled some more, and then continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Basara -- you must become her master, make her into a thing of yours.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I, become Zest’s master…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara turned to look at Zest, only to see Zest slowly raise her lowered head, her eyes meeting with Basara’s. There was no signs of rejecting Basara at all in her eyes -- but rather, it was as if hoping what Sheera said will turn into reality. However--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Isn’t the Master-Servant Contract magic only usable on the night of a full moon…? There’s still a very long time before the next full moon comes.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara… So in the end you are not opposed to making a Master-Servant Contract with Zest?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Only if -- Zest herself agrees to it, then I will have no opposition.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara directly gave his affirmation to Sheera, because the decision to make a Master-Servant Contract with Zest -- that decision, was already made long ago in his heart, from before Basara entered the Demon Realm.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At those words, Zest stared at him in shock. Then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara, then I would say that there’s no problems at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The restriction of a full moon, only exists when the magic is used in the Human Realm… The Master-Servant Contract is pretty commonplace within the Demon Realm, so it can be used anytime. Since everyone already knows that I’m casual, bold, and unconstrained, even Ramsas and Klaus likely wouldn’t say anything if I were to use the Master-Servant magic to make you Zest’s master.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……I see.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With Sheera’s explanation, Basara murmured his understanding of that, and also understood why Sheera’s attitude towards him had changed suddenly. Zest’s position and circumstances, must be in a much bigger danger than what Basara had thought. That’s why--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Is this the only chance?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now -- Basara is standing at the intersection to decide if he really has the power to be able to protect Zest, but the situation isn’t really 「No Problems at all」 like Sheera said. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Zest… Let me ask you first, are you really willing to have a Master-Servant Contract with me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thus, Basara ask Zest who was before him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-This isn’t something that can be selfishly decided by me alone, I would still need the approval of Mio-sama and the others.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Towards Zest who replied with her head lowered while biting her lower lip, Toujou Basara continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--I have already obtained their approval for this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eh--! …?&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest raised her head from the shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We have already discussed this matter before we had come here. If it was deemed that there is a need to, I will bring you back together with me -- and they gave their approval.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Also&#039;&#039;--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&#039;&#039;They&#039;&#039; -- of course includes Mio.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Mio-sama she…? …Is it - really the truth?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara then put on a smile, and said to the dumbfounded Zest:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It’s the truth. It exactly because that’s the kind of person she is, that’s become the reason why I will protect her no matter what… So if you are willing to, I hope that you can help me in protecting her -- protecting my proud and arrogant little sister, Zest.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Please.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If you are willing to help me in protecting her… I too will also protect you with my all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Finishing, Toujou Basara gazed at Zest sincerely. After a long period of silence--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………I refuse.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara heard it -- Zest’s extremely soft voice saying out her rejection.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thus, [I see], those words came to Basara’s mouth -- but they never made it out of his mouth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Reason being, Zest hasn’t finished speaking. Those are, her feelings that have always been suppressed up till now.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I too want to protect Mio-sama, but… I do not want Basara to be protecting me, or else it would make the Master-Servant Contract meaningless. I wish to become your maidservant, to truly become your subordinate… to live for you only, and go through happy and tough times together.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Zest…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest poured out her own thoughts, and after Basara said her name--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please, Basara… Please allow me to remain by your side forever!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She pressed herself against Basara’s chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To which Basara whispered into her ear: [Yes.] -- his own choice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Sheera, looks like I’ll be troubling you once again.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment he finished his sentence, a magic circle opened up beneath them on the bath’s floor in order to let Basara and Zest make the Master-Servant Contract.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Thank goodness that the efforts I spent on preparing these won’t go to waste.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As if knowing that this would happen, that small young and glamorous succubus smiled, and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If you want it to be like Mio’s and Yuki’s, the Contract would need to be made through a succubus’s power.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And at the same time, a magic circle appeared on the back of Basara’s hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that -- there was no need to say&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;had the urge to use the word [narrate] instead&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; what came after that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;”------“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“------“&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara stretched his right hand towards Zest, who respectfully kneeled and received the palm -- and lightly kissed the magic circle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara and Zest were then immediately enveloped by the light indicating that the Contract has been completed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…With that…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest is now finally Basara’s subordinate, but for the question of whether he is able to be able to protect Zest, it still depended on whether his good fortune will last. Feeling the weight of the responsibility on him increasing, Basara raised Zest’s hand to aid her in standing up. It was then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ya--Fuaaaahhhhh!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest gave a cutesy scream, and limply remained attached to Basara. Taking a closer look, the collar-like markings on Zest’s throat showing the activation of the curse could be seen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The unbelievable amounts of pleasure, caused Zest’s whole body to tremble while she was in Basara’s arms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…S-So this is…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although it was somewhat painful, the pleasure that was stronger continued flowing out from the depths of Zest’s body. Within the fresh numbness and aches, Zest is now currently experiencing her indescribable first experience. This sweetness that she is experiencing right now -- so this is the happiness that belongs solely to women. Just then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-Why…? Didn’t making the Contract go smoothly?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara had questions, while holding Zest within his arms. This development seemed exactly just like the developments that happened during the contract making with both Yuki and Mio. However, Zest had indeed kissed that magic circle before it disappeared unlike Mio and Yuki -- in fact, Zest herself too doesn’t know why things had turned out like this.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara… So it turned out like this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apparently this was also beyond what Sheera had expected.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I would say that this would be that although you said that there’s no problem, deep within Zest’s heart, she is worried that she would cause you unneeded trouble now that she’s your subordinate, which had activated the curse.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah--…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The reason why Zest harboured guilt, turned Basara speechless.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! …I-I’m very very sorry…I have no intention of doubting your words… Aaaoo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although she was on the verge of crying, Zest still continued trying to quell the anger she thought Basara must be feeling while gasping heavily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Basara-ya, there’s something that I have to reveal… Although my current power is far from the levels during my prime, my succubus powers are still stronger than Maria’s. So, the effects of the aphrodisiac curse are very likely to be much stronger than that of Yuki’s and Mio’s.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes, I can see that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara then flared up while hugging Zest in his arms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t panic… Zest’s powers are above Mio and the others, and the guilt she has probably isn’t really deep, so she’ll probably be able to take it longer than them.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that supposed to be consolation? Anyway, thanks for providing that piece of information.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara sighed, and laid Zest on the floor of the bath.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! …Basa-ra…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As this was her first time experiencing pleasure, Zest had no idea how she should take it, so she could only just look at Basara in a daze.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Zest, please bear with it a little longer. I will soon make you yield, and free you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thus -- Toujou Basara said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Accept me -- as your Master.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Those words are just what Zest wanted to hear -- so, despite the overwhelming pleasure shaking her body--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Yes, Master Basara!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest gave a small smile and stretched out her hands, and said from the very bottom of her heart:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Zest is Master Basara’s maidservant… Please make everyone remember that clearly!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And so Basara nodded -- and silently, his hands went towards Zest’s breasts.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Ah…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not just Zolgear, that body part which no male has ever touched before -- in those days after leaving Basara&#039;s side, those days where her endless yearning for him and dreaming about being at his mercy caused changes within her body, turning her breasts into an alluring size. That very evening, when those very breasts were about to be encroached on by the city guards, Basara had stopped them which meant that he had protected her chastity -- that was the first time Basara had protected her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Ah ha…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hence, with the moment of Basara finally caressing those breasts of hers finally arriving, Zest’s heart was beating in happiness. Just seeing his hand getting closer and closer -- raised her desires and anticipation higher and higher.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And then, Basara began caress those plump and obscene breasts of hers -- and it was in that very moment--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;……..!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The aftermath of her breasts being caressed for the first time, was a body-shaking female climax. It was then, Zest’s subjugation had begun.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her eyes rolling and her memories now in short bits and pieces, Zest then slowly regained her normal vision, and upon seeing Basara still at her side--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…How moving, Master Basara and I are finally…!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--In the past, Zest had witnessed the scene where Basara and Yuki made the Master-Servant Contract, and also the scene where Basara, Yuki, Mio and Maria had taken a bath together in the Toujou Residences’ bathroom. Back then, she had secretly decided. That if she were to one day be subjugated by Basara, she wanted it to happen in a bathroom. That very wish had now come true, and Zest kept shouting Basara’s name, wanting to share the happiness she felt; however, since Basara wanted to subjugate Zest as soon as possible, the caresses that were originally gentle quickly became stronger--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Aahh! Yaaah! Fuuaa-aahhaaa…. Yaa-aaaahh! …Haaaaaaaaaaaaaaahhhhhhhhhhhhhhh♥”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The caresses on Zest’s breasts very quickly turned wild, allowing room for only gasps and the pleasure filling up every pore of her body, her burning desires eventually turned her brown-coloured flesh into a wet and bright lewd colour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And as if wanting to express the pleasure she felt, the twisting and quivering of her body continued, and she let out gasps of lewdness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…My goodness… My breasts has already become so salacious&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;having or conveying undue or indecent interest in sexual matters&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara’s fingers dug into the flesh, rapidly kneading Zest’s breasts into various lewd shapes -- emphasising its softness to none other than Zest herself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Lewd…&#039;&#039; The fact that Basara is having his way with her breasts, as well as the pleasure resulted from that, are lewd. Being seen by Basara in this state, further intensified the pleasant feeling within her. Soon, Zest saw the tips of her breasts begin to get excited from the pleasure, swelling up and becoming hard. As her breasts melted into pleasure, that very part became harder and harder.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As Basara kneaded Zest’s breasts, those extremely sensitive tips, were then rubbed in between his thumb and forefinger. It was in that very moment--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ya-- Fuuaaaaaaahhhhhhhhh♥”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Another orgasm at a level where the first one could never compare to, caused Zest’s body to spasm; arching her back and sticking out her butt, her waist to hips were raised uncontrollably. Basara’s right hand then went around Zest’s waist, and lifted her up. By the time she felt a floating sensation, Basara was already face to face with her straddling his crotch.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
By the time she realised that, one of tips of her breasts were already being sucked in his mouth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah--Aahh…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although something happened and her thoughts hadn’t caught up to what she was feeling, Zest’s femininity told her that she too also needed to start moving. And so, Zest’s hands went around Basara’s neck, and she put some force into the legs around his waist -- at the same time, Basara also disappeared from her sights. All of a sudden, she felt some unrest from the thought that he might have cast her aside.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But that was wrong, as Basara was still in front of her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--It was the mirror on the ceiling of the bath that had confirmed that fact.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While orgasming, Zest’s eyes then met with the her in that mirror.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…This is, me…?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What the reflection of the mirror showed, is not the cold and frosty Zest she was in the past, but gasping from the tremendous climaxes with a lewd smile -- it was just simply a girl intoxicated in pleasure.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--However, she didn’t mind, just how lewd her own expression is. Compared to this, Basara sucking her breasts and his hands relentlessly kneading her butt -- the pleasure brought about from those sensations are much more important.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ya,aahh… Ah! W-Why…is, my body, getting hotter and, hotter… Fuaahhh!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Despite climaxing continuously, the curse showed no signs of going away. Her upper body arching to its limit again due to another orgasm, what vision imperceptibly&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;so slight, gradual, or subtle as not to be perceived&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;  became that of what is behind her now.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Ah…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Over there in her sights, is Sheera. She was looking at the scene of Zest lewdly orgasming, with a coquettish&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;behaving in such a way as to suggest a playful sexual attraction; flirtatious&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; smile that didn’t match her young appearance; her lips seemed have said something and after fidgeting a bit, she then went towards the entrance of the bath.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Sheera-sama…?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Is she going to leave before witnessing the end of Zest being subjugated by Basara? With her awareness being broken up by the waves of pleasure, Zest couldn’t understand what Sheera had just said, it was as if like the strong sensations had paralysed her sense of hearing. However -- Zest found out the answers very quickly. Gripping her shoulders, Basara then pulled her towards him, making her sit up straight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, the lips of Basara’s mouth in front of Zest’s eyes started moving.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…………?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest didn’t know how to read lips.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But she was able to forcibly make out the words [I’m] and [ear].&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that -- Basara’s lips began to slowly near her ear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Master Basara, are you…?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara had already kneaded her breasts and butt out of proportions, so in that moment, she couldn’t understand just what Basara was going to do.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And in the next moment, Zest realised a truth and an answer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seems that the ears are full of erogenous zones -- and that, &#039;&#039;&#039;that area&#039;&#039;&#039; is her weak spot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 5===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Um, Basara, are you alright?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maidservant Noel shouted out at the large bath for male guests’ use.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She had been asked by Mio and the other to check on Basara since he still hasn’t returned for a long time after entering the bath.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The basket in the changing room contained not only Basara’s clothes, but also Zest’s and Sheera’s clothes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They all are indeed inside the bath, but could the reason why they were taking so long--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;--Did they faint in the bath from soaking too long?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Should I go inside to check?&#039;&#039; As Noel became indecisive--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;----------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt; ♥』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest’s scream came from inside the bath.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! --A-Are you alright…--!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rushing into the bathing area not knowing what happened -- she then saw it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The scene of Zest’s ear in Basara&#039;s mouth, and Zest experiencing a massive climax. Her waist and hips trembled violently, shaking her large pleasure-filled breasts about.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ah…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Noel’s legs became weak, and she collapsed onto the floor. Just then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--My my, this girl really knows how to pick a great time to come.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A giggling voice came from her side, and a pair of hands covered her eyes from behind her. As if her thoughts were seen through, she then heard someone whispering into her ear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『However, it would be for the best if you forget what you saw here. You are to immediately return to the room Mio and the others are and tell them that Basara will not be returning tonight and to not worry -- do you understand? 』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……………Yes.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rapidly nodding her head, Noel then followed the instructions and left the bath.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To head towards the room Mio and the rest are in -- and to tell them that Basara will not be returning for the night.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After successfully sending Noel off,&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright… No one will be coming in to disturb us anymore.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera giggled, and--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Um, Sheera.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Basara said while hugging Zest:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You were right, about Zest’s weak spot being her ear… Thank you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the neck area of Zest who had already lost consciousness after Basara bit her ear, the markings of the curse has already vanished. However--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara, Basara… Isn’t it too early to be thanking me?” &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What do you mean…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera then said to Basara who began to feel doubt:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What you did just now, was merely to use pleasure to make Zest unconscious, a measure used in emergencies. Didn’t she activate the curse due to being worried over causing you problems as your subordinate? Unless you managed to make her really feel 『I am not causing trouble for Master Basara』 and 『I am able to give my assistance to Master Basara』, the curse will activate again when she regains consciousness and becomes stable.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then -- what I did just now--“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry… Your efforts have not gone to waste.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera then came to where the two of them were, and touched Zest’s cheeks--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, Zest… Time to wake up.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After gently saying that, Zest then opened her eyes slowly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Ah…Sheera-sama…I…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you remember? You had fainted partway while you were serving Basara, so now it’s for the best if you continue… Do you not want to be a bother to Basara? Then you better assist him well, and show that to him.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Master Basara… A bother…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Saying so with confusion in her eyes, the markings then appeared once more on her throat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sheera, you…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing the curse of the Master-Servant Contract activating and thus started to panic, Sheera raised her hand to stop Basara and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry… Right now Zest is calm from the tremendous climaxes she had since her memories aren’t clear, so her guilt isn’t that strong. What you have to do now, is to help her out from this situation. The curse of the Master-Servant Contract has the purpose of reminding the subordinate to be loyal to the Master, so no matter how muddled her memories are, she would still remember the reason for the activation of the curse. Hence, before she starts blaming herself when she completely regains her calm, you have to drill into her the knowledge that her presence and existence will not be harmful but beneficial to you, to give her the confidence to remain by your side as your subordinate.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;After all--&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The tipsy state she is in right now will make it easy for her to reveal her true thoughts. If you were to accomplish that, the curse will no longer activate when she regains her calm after that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the only way to make Zest to be able to continue living as Basara’s subordinate.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! ……--I understand.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Finally, Basara gave his agreement after thinking over it, and so--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Come, Zest… hurry up and serve Basara, and prove that you are able to help him.”&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Sheera’s line&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Yes…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To be able to help him, you must be able to do some meaningful things to be able to have pride in being his subordinate… So, hurry up and go serve Basara, he’s waiting for you.”&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Sheera’s line too&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest nodded, and then wrapped her hands around Basara’s neck.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Master Basara--…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With a confused and alluring smile, she then pressed against Basara’s lips, with her own lips.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basking in the sweet warmth welling up within her in the aftertaste of her climaxes, Zest kissed Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Because as Basara’s subordinate, Zest felt that she must be willing to sacrifice her all for him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Nn… Oi, Zest… Mnn?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest drunkenly kissed the misunderstanding Basara even stronger, and just then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Basara, you should just let Zest do as she please… She had given up her first kiss to you since she thought that will make you happy, so how could you as the master to reciprocate her feelings?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Sheera said that as if scolding him--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara’s body twitched, and he then pulled Zest into his arms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then -- the time to turn them into true Master and Subordinate, began, like as if they were lovers.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--However, it began with just Zest one-sidedly serving Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Despite Zest using her obscene and lewd breasts to continually scrub Basara’s body, he showed no resistance at all. However, this made Zest worried.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
「…Master Basara, please use my body to tell me, just what do I have to do in order to satisfy you. 」&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Giving Basara a kiss as if sending a plea, it appeared that her thoughts had reached Basara’s heart. He then began making demands for her –from that moment onwards, Zest began to experience countless numbers of orgasms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Nibbling her ear while massaging her breast, and her butt – all these made Zest become surprised at just how easily she can be overwhelmed by pleasure, which had caused her to expose her intoxicated and drunk state induced by her orgasms to Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In that regard&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;the revelation of that state in the previous paragraph&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;, Zest was not an exception. Reason being that no matter how embarrassed the person became, it will still be insignificant against the bliss and pleasure she experienced. Just as the minute hand of the clock embedded into the wall of the bath finished one round—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haah… Nn, chii, chiiiii… Aaahh! Master Basara… Nnnnfff…lyaaaa…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The kiss between Zest and Basara, basically turned into intense intertwining of tongues and pooling of saliva.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hands massaging her breasts from behind her back, Zest had twisted her body back to kiss – although the posture brought about some discomfort, it was completely insignificant against the tremendous intense bliss and pleasure Basara gave her. Zest’s instincts as a woman were still steadily rising, plunging her into madness. With all signs of morality and discipline and self-control gone from her eyes—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Master Basara, suck me more… please make Zest’s breasts become as sensitive as Mio-sama’s…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest shook her breasts around like a spoiled child, to which Basara immediately granted her request. Making Zest sit on his thighs facing him, he began kneading her butt with his hands and latched his lips onto that pair stiff tips of her breasts, and loudly sucked it in. Faced with a simultaneous pincer attack—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yaah! Aahh… Fuuu! Nnnhh… Nn-nnuu… Nnnaaaa♥”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest wriggled around on his thighs, squirming around intoxicatedly, drunk on the pleasure bestowed on her by her Master’s forceful caresses. Since not long ago, something deep within her lower abdomen has already melted into heat, as if it was already ready to cause her to burn up anytime; her wet pleasure-drenched sensitive spot had already begun to pour out lewd juices, causing those juices to continuously flow down her thighs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was twerking her hips on a male’s thighs – as if competing for the top contender for the world’s most lewd lap dance. Zest’s lowered sight caught on to just how crazily she was moving her hips about, and it was then she noticed – Basara had also &#039;&#039;grown up&#039;&#039; due to a male’s reaction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Master Basara, because of me, you had already become so…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For someone like her to be able to make Basara become this excited – this fact, made Zest with her already-very-sensitive body even more excited; with her blazing flames of passion, large amounts of saliva suddenly built-up in her mouth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After swallowing that saliva back down in one gulp—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Master Basara… Ah…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest slowly slipped down off Basara’s thighs, and knelt down before his waist.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A subordinate who only cared about her own indulgence in pleasure ad neglected her master’s satisfaction has got no worth to exist. That was the reason why she then slowly raised her eyes to look at Basara, to make a request to Basara with her wet eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara did not say anything—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;--------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And gently stroked her head with his hand with a calm expression&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;was supposed to be [peaceful expression], but it didn’t seem to fit&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; on his face.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That was enough. Even without any words, that was enough to let Zest understand that Basara has given her his clearance.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--Thus using her mouth, Zest began to serve Basara’s private area.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And what happened after that, was just ecstatic – causing Zest to close her eyes, and gathered all of her consciousness into her mouth and tongue that was being used to serve Basara. Later after that—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;-----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;Eh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest opened her eyes, and realised that both she and Basara were lying on the floor of the bath with their legs entangled together.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The two of them were also stark naked. Basara’s face was buried within Zest’s breasts, breathing normally.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Just what exactly happened?&#039;&#039; – Zest was of course stunned&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;stunned/shocked&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;, and just then—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—Are you awake, Zest?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A very leisurely voice came over to her. Turning around to look, she saw Sheera sitting at the edge of the bath.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sheera-sama, I…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You probably should still remember – no matter how intoxicated with pleasure you’ve become, you will still definitely remember the situation when the curse of the Master-Servant Contract activated.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…………Ah.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Those words vividly awakened Zest’s memories from not too long ago. Although Basara’s &#039;&#039;male pheromones&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;referring to something that has been discharged&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; made her feel dizzy, the fact that she currently was still latched onto Basara’s &#039;&#039;avatar&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;male private part&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;still remains.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『Nnhh… Nnfuu, fuuu, lyuu, chuu… Master Basara♥Hapuuf… Ann, chuu…nnn… Haafff, chuu…Puuuff…yeuu…nnaa… Ah-pchh…』&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;various and lots of sound effect text that I have no idea how to put into English. Basically, I tried partially improvising here, so accuracy can’t be guaranteed&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Using her tongue to carefully entangle it, Zest intricately served it with her mouth, and Basara’s stiff &#039;&#039;avatar&#039;&#039; also twitched excitedly in her mouth – in order to satisfy Basara even more, the intoxicated Zest decided to go with trial and error, to search for a way that Basara would like.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『Nnn… Aahh… Aaoo, Master, Basara… Haahh… Aaahh… Fuahh♥』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s right – not only using her mouth, Zest also utilised her large full breasts later on; completely enveloping Basara’s &#039;&#039;avatar&#039;&#039;, she had also completely immersed herself into serving Basara with her own breasts.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was different from when Basara sucked on them – with the effects of friction and other things due to Zest’s breasts gripping onto it, lewd sounds sounded out with every single movement her breasts made. The joy from serving Basara, combined with the immorality from wantonly&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;sexually lawless or unrestrained; loose; lascivious; lewd: wanton behavior&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; rubbing &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039; with her breasts, inextricably&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;incapable of being disentangled, undone, loosed, or solved&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; raised Zest’s lust even higher.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I--…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest finally remembered the ecstasy she had felt when she and Basara and finally met again. She then forcefully pushed the Basara attempting to &#039;&#039;fire&#039;&#039; onto her breasts to the floor of the bath, and after clasping her arms around his waist, she pushed herself against him – plunging Basara’s &#039;&#039;avatar&#039;&#039; into her mouth once again.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--After that, that major historical event replayed itself vividly in Zest’s mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Making her remember – the events of Basara’s hot torrents&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;ejaculate; what comes out during ejaculation&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; flooding her, as well as--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
(…Master Basara, Master Basara, Master Basara…♥)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her swallowing it all, while calling his name countless times in her heart. With every movement she had made with her head, that viscous pleasure had poured even more of itself into her body – just that was already more than enough to bring her up to a continuous string of climaxes, plunging her whole body into overwhelming bliss, causing every single part of her to shake. At the end, as all of &#039;&#039;&#039;that&#039;&#039;&#039; flowed past Zest’s throat--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ah…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Remembering what had happened after that, a cold chill suddenly assaulted her body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—have you remembered it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As if seeing through Zest’s emotions, Sheera smiled and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You were very fierce and abrupt when you lost yourself in playing… As if this being your first time isn’t enough, you had kept harassing Basara non-stop – doing &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039; three times with your mouth, and two times with your breasts in between &#039;&#039;that&#039;&#039; – I can see that you have a really bright future ahead of you. Basara must have already accumulated a lot of &#039;&#039;damage&#039;&#039; – be thankful that you have such a strong master, okay?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………………Yes.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While embarrassed to the point of wanting to make herself disappear, Zest nodded. Even if it was while being plunged into total bliss, lusting for Basara like she had just did is just too embarrassing for her to face. But she still remembered with every eruption&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;ejaculation&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; Basara had made on Zest’s breasts and in her mouth, he would also cry out her name.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To show that he also wanted her&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;[lusted for her] is the exact translation, but might not have been the best to use. Double meaning here: [To lust for her] and [To accept her as a subordinate/servant]&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;. That’s why--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest felt her neck – there were no signs of the collar markings of the Master-Servant Contract’s curse, as well as any lingering signs of the sweet aphrodisiac. In other words, that is the best evidence to show that she had served him well and had fulfilled her responsibility of serving Basara – that’s why, she could no longer hold &#039;&#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039;&#039; back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before the gap in her memories, what she had whispered while her legs and Basara’s were entangled:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…I really did it. I finally became Master Basara’s subordinate – and family.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cuddling against the sleeping face of her very much cherished Basara, Zest whispered it again. Then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Congratulations on being reborn, Zest… As a precaution, please answer my question first.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera then continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—towards becoming Basara’s subordinate and being by his side, do you still harbour any doubt?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[None at all.] While trying to hold back her tears, Zest shook her head to answer her former master’s question.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With no more guilt towards becoming Basara’s subordinate – all that’s left in her is purely bliss.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Translator&#039;s Notes and References==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;references/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
{{SimpleNav}}&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;/noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>112.201.117.48</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>http://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Shinmai_Maou_no_Keiyakusha:Volume_5_Chapter_1&amp;diff=563738</id>
		<title>Shinmai Maou no Keiyakusha:Volume 5 Chapter 1</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="http://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Shinmai_Maou_no_Keiyakusha:Volume_5_Chapter_1&amp;diff=563738"/>
		<updated>2020-07-19T14:18:34Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;112.201.117.48: /* Part 7 */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;==Chapter 1: Being with You in the Demon Realm==&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 1===&lt;br /&gt;
Midnight came around, and Lucia appeared on time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Jumping through space and appearing before Basara and the rest—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank you for waiting…is everyone ready?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her tone and liveliness were completely different from Maria’s – relatively cold.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—We’re ready, please begin.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Toujou Basara nodded his head and replied. For the past month, everyone had been preparing for this journey.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Other than Maria, they were all wearing their school uniform, including Kurumi who had changed into the uniform she had worn to attend Hijirigasaka Academy’s Sports Festival. Although Yuki and Kurumi had their Hero battle clothes, they decided not to wear clothes that could stimulate the Demons.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Because -- including Basara, their positions today are not Heroes -- but instead just purely Mio’s family and friends.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For their clothes and daily necessities, they had gone with packing for a short trip overseas. According to Maria, their clothes could be washed anywhere and their weapons could be summoned anytime, so there isn’t any personal concerns; both Yuki and Kurumi only needed to prepare the medicinal items needed for the Heroes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thus, Basara and Mio each packed a single luggage case, and Yuki and Kurumi had two each, with each and every one being of a different size; Maria has her own residence within the Demon Realm, so she didn’t pack anything.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, we will now depart.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, a large magic circle appeared in the space beside Lucia and slowly merged into the space, turning into a pitch-black hole.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“My god…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kurumi became amazed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course Kurumi would be amazed. Normally, humans needed to fulfil some conditions before they are able to proceed to the Demon Realm. The Demon Race are beings in a higher class than Humans, and that the dimension of the Demon Realm is higher than the dimension Humans are in; the principles in constructing a tunnel from a higher to lower dimension are completely different from that of a lower to higher dimension.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
One of the ways for to construct a tunnel was to make use of the overlapping between the Demon Realm and the Human Realm with its lesser numbers, to create space instability in some places and the natural phenomena  -- The 「Dimensional Boundary」. Japan has some places where the Dimensional Boundary has occurred that are currently strictly controlled by the Hero [Village] – without their authorization, those like the exiled Basara and Mio who has Demon blood within her are not allowed to use it. Jin who had pretended to be going to Dubai when in truth going to the Demon Realm when Mio and the rest started living together had probably used a Dimensional Boundary overseas.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…My dad has got many connections after all.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even if Jin has been blacklisted by the Heroes in Japan, the Hero of the Great War is still very popular overseas, so finding a way to the Demon Realm wouldn’t be something difficult for him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And right now, Lucia who is a pure Demon had just created a very stable Dimensional Boundary that even Humans like Basara can cross, showing a glimpse of her power to them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
…But since Lucia is the Right-Hand Man of the leader of the Moderates Faction, such power was to be expected.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Amongst the Heroes, there were some specialising in creating spells that manipulate space, but Basara had never seen one that are as stable as the one before him right now. Of course, being able to construct barriers or manipulate space does not equate to strong battle power. Just then—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“There’s nothing to be surprised about. Mio-sama has Demon blood, Basara uses a cursed sword, some of Kurumi’s contracted spirits relations to the Demon Realm; just by taking advantage of those demonic fluctuations, creating a Dimensional Boundary that you all can pass through isn’t that hard.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia said, as if seeing through why they were so surprised.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…What about me? My [Sakuya] shouldn’t have any demonic fluctuations.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—Affirmative, Yuki’s spirit sword doesn’t contain any demonic fluctuations.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia slightly nodded in response to Yuki’s question.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s why, I’ve used those demonic fluctuations within your body.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Within my body…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The fluctuations from the Master-Servant Contract you had made with Basara. Yuki sis and Mio-sama are both linked to Basara with my demonic power.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The intermediary Maria, explained to Yuki who was frowning from being unable to understand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, it doesn’t really matter even if Mio-sama doesn’t have Demon blood; as for Kurumi, she recently has been through my succubus baptism a lot, so its fine even if she doesn’t have any demonic spirits, they all would be able to pass through onee-sama’s Dimensional Boundary.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! …T-That was why you had done all those things?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Upon seeing the red-faced Kurumi coyly &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;shyly, embarrassed&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; ask, Maria replied all smiles:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You’re wrong. I was unable to hold back my succubus instincts, and vented my libido on you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Y-You idiot! Why do I have to handle your libido!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“C-Calm down, Kurumi. If you give in to Maria’s tone, you’ll fall into her trap.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! ….Big sis~”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kurumi immediately plunged into Yuki’s arms after being warned by Mio, and Yuki began patting her head to placate her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Yuki is showing such a happy face…such glaring big-sister’s-love radiance.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
「…………」&lt;br /&gt;
 &lt;br /&gt;
Lucia quietly watched all this, her eyebrows not wrinkling even once. Even while standing still in a very natural way, she didn’t show any sign of any flaws or struggles, while maintaining the Dimensional Boundary. Her outer-appearances are similar to Maria’s adult form, and she could very well be a S-Class expert.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Is anything wrong?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing Lucia sense Basara’s gaze, she replied [Nothing] and turned to Mio and the rest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As if seeing what this meant, they became serious and stopped making a ruckus.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Toujou Basara thus said to the four of them:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
「——Let’s go.」&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They nodded -- and walked towards the Dimensional Boundary in a single file.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 2===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They were immediately enveloped by an abyss-like darkness, and they suddenly lost their orientation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As if they were in outer space.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--However, that sensation was short-lived.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the next moment -– they were all standing within an unfamiliar forest with the sweet smell of grass; as the wind blew, the rays of sunlight scattered on the ground also underwent some changes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It’s just as Maria said, there was a time difference from Japan.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This place is—“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Oldora Forest.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia turned to face Basara, and answered his uncertainty. Just then—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Oldora Forest…is this place?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kurumi asked while shrinking her body away, making Mio surprised.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You know this place?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes. Although our knowledge of the terrain in the Demon Realm is limited – everyone will definitely know about Oldora Forest.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For Basara, Yuki, and Kurumi, all of their knowledge of this place came from their elders who had participated in the previous war. In the past, the Moderates Faction controlled the majority of the Demon Realm, but then rapidly lost power and influence with the death of Wilbert, ending up in today’s state. Comparing from fifteen years ago during the war, the current power map must have already changed a lot. But the Moderates Faction probably never accounted for this forest, since after all—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“—This place is the forest closest to the Demon Lord Wilbert’s castle.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This might have been a suitable place for Basara and the rest to land, having been invited by the Moderates Faction after all. However—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lucia-oneesama – why didn’t you directly bring us into Wildart City?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria asked while frowning. The term Maria just said was also one that Basara and the other Heroes often heard – The city of the Demon Lord’s Capital back when Wilbert was still on the throne.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As the ones who were invited by the current leader of the Moderate Faction, Ramsas and other high-class Demons, it would usually be done as Maria said, sending them directly into the city to save trouble and simplify matters.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“From the viewpoint of crisis management, we have made the decision to try to avoid the areas near and within the city, to prevent any involvement and manipulation of a third party and be mistaken as an enemy invasion.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You might be right, but do remember that the Current Demon Lord Faction is also after Mio-sama’s life—“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am well aware of that, and that is why I had chosen Oldora Forest. This place is not far away from the city, it’s difficult to observe anything from outside, and it would be difficult for anyone in the surrounding areas to feel any Dimensional Linking.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Lucia replied without any change in her expression to the complaining Maria—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let us walk for a short distance, and there will be a horse carriage to bring us into the city – Please follow me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And proceeded to walk off in another direction into the forest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I’m sorry, everyone…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria lowered her eyes while feeling bad, and Basara patted her shoulder and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No need to say it like it’s your fault… I guess we better get moving then.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Alright.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria nodded, and Basara began following Lucia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Much less a pavement, there wasn’t even an exposed path on the forest floor. Everyone walked in a single file slowly through the grass, and soon—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eh… When I had first learned about the Demon Realm, I had thought that it would be a dark and scary place; but in the end it was just as Maria said, it wasn’t much different from our world, and there’s even a sun… There’s so many different types of plants here, giving the forest so much fresh air, it just feels no different from the mountains in the countryside.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Mio expressed her feelings to the view of the natural forest before her. As it’s their first visit, Basara consulted Maria on a few matters to gain some knowledge on things like cultures and customs; but upon seeing a view completely contrary to his expectations, everything felt fresh. It’s just—&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What fresh air… Really, you just don’t understand.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What do you mean, Kurumi?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Behind her, Kurumi sighed, and Mio turned back to ask.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You have Demon blood, so you might not have noticed… While the views and scenes within the forest are indeed beautiful, the concentration of demonic power within this place is completely shocking. With such strong demonic fluctuations, it really prevents people from coming to the Demon Realm.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hearing Kurumi say tensely, Mio became surprised.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Oh… Is it true, Basara?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes, the demonic concentration within this place is very strong. Remember Zolgear’s house? It’s similar to that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Such thick demonic concentrations will probably lower the immunity system of a normal human, but as ones who had underwent the training from the Heroes, that might not be too much of a problem. But as such strong demonic concentrations usually equates to a fairly powerful demon or evil spirit lurking around, they were unable to relax.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Really…? In such a natural and beautiful place?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara gave a bitter smile to Mio who muttered unbelievably, and turned his sight to another place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Yuki, are you alright?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah, I’m fine.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Beside Basara, Yuki nodded and replied, showing no hints of any stress within her expression.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
…Probably because she’s the user of [Sakuya].&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In short, the spirit sword can purify her body anytime, even weakening the demonic fluctuations from the Master-Servant Contract; it certainly is useful as a Hero, but it presents another problem in the Demon Realm. Being unable to use [Sakuya]’s original amount of power like within Zolgear’s mansion, the one most affected by the demonic concentration is undoubtedly Yuki.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara couldn’t see any abnormalities in Yuki right now. But before Yuki manages to get used to the demonic concentration, there would be a burden on her, so any repercussions appearing wouldn’t be strange at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yuki—“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara originally wanted to help Yuki carry one of the two bags she was carrying, but instead retracted his words.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Yuki&#039;s probably already aware that the one most affected by the demonic concentrations in the Demon Realm will be her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But yet she still agreed to go along with Basara and the rest. Basara’s worries, might be contempt in Yuki’s eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is it, Basara?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Replying, Yuki’s breaths became slightly faster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Nothing. It’s great if you’re alright – let’s go.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hearing Basara expressing trust and worry, Yuki became slightly surprised.	&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Oh.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And happily smiled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just like that -- after following behind Lucia for a while, they saw an ancient-type wooden horse carriage with a window waiting for them in a more open area. The carriage would probably be able to easily fit more than ten people, and there were four black horses attached to it.  However--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-The horses in the Demon Realm are very big…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Mio said. The Human Realm had many horses like those used in agricultural activities, but they all pale in comparison. The horses before them are at least three metres tall, its stature doesn’t seem heavy and seemed more like racing horses.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, these horses are especially different. Horses of this size are rare in the Demon Realm.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Two maidservants then appeared at the front of the carriage, most likely to be Lucia’s subordinates. They approached them after opening the door, and said respectfully:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Everybody, please enter the carriage, and leave your luggage to us.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And then carried their luggage onto the goods rack at the trailing end of the carriage. Just then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah, no need, I’ll carry this myself.”       “Me too, sorry to cause inconvenience to you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After handing over the luggage containing their clothes and sundry items, the other luggage contains their assist tools &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;for their weapons, I think?&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;, which would naturally be better if they were to carry it themselves.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the two of them entered the carriage, Lucia entered last, and a maidservant closed the carriage door. After ensuring they the maids had gotten onto the coachman’s seat and gripped the reins, she said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Everyone, we will be departing now.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, the horses attached to the carriage began to move forward slowly. Not long after leaving the open area, the horse carriage got onto a dirt path and began to gain speed. While observing the scenery passing by the window, Basara asked:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Um… How long will it approximately take to reach Wildart City?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--In terms of the units from your realm, it will be about an hour.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia answered without even looking at Basara from her position right at the edge of the seats. As they would all be under her care for the next hour, Basara had wanted to try to close the gap between them and her…but as her attitude is that cold, everyone hesitated on whether they should speak or not.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
「……………………………」&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The depressing silence went on and on. What could be heard in the interior of the carriage, was only the sounds of the wheels of the horse carriage rolling on the path.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Ah, everyone, please look to your left!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Maria said as if wanting to dissolve the awkwardness within the carriage. When everyone turned towards the voice to the left -- the horse carriage left the forest, and wide and droad hills came into view; in the bottom right of the window is the view of the many many buildings of the city.  Surrounding the city, is the outer wall that seemed to have been made by cutting from a large piece of rock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wow…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A very spectacular view it was. That is likely the previous Demon Lord’s royal capital -- Wildart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So the city with a castle at the centre of the urban is Wildart City?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes. That and the castle was governed by Mio-sama’s father, His Majesty Wilbert, and its governor right now is His Majesty Wilbert’s brother Ramsas-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Listening to Maria’s explanation, Mio silently gripped Basara’s hand while looking at the view through the window, and Basara held that cold and trembling hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As the scenery passed by the window without stopping, they got closer and closer to that far-away castle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 3===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the horse carriage Basara and the rest were on followed around over half of the city’s wall, they finally arrived at the back entrance of the castle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Mio was the spiritual leader of the Moderates Faction as Wilbert’s only daughter, and Basara and the others were Heroes. If they were to simply cross the urban district and be recognised, a large commotion would likely be created. Going around the urban district after entering the city was probably a good choice. After crossing the moat on the bridge let down, the horse carriage finally came to a stop. The door was then opened from the outside, and after Lucia alighted from the carriage--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Mio-sama, and the other guests -- welcome to Wildart City.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia formally welcomed them with a serious bow, and the other maids also bowed. The main guest is Mio, while Basara and the rest were accompanying her, thus--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err… I am Naruse Mio, I’ll be under your care for the next few days.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Originally planning to remain amongst her companions, Mio then stepped forward, unsure of how she should be acting, tentatively bowing first before saying that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Well then, please come this way.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia said so, and the maids behind her bowed and went past them towards the horse carriage. They were probably going to get their luggage.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After handing their luggage over to them, Basara and the rest went into the city under the lead of Lucia. Even if they had entered through the back entrance, the ceiling was still pretty high, and the decorations were still very luxurious.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Much attention was undoubtedly given to the furnishings and lighting within the walkways and corridors, as they seem to tell many stories from the past. Of course, everything was spotless.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…As expected of the spiritual leader Wilbert’s Moderates Faction’s city.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Royal Capital displays the prestige of the nation. Even though the Moderates Faction quickly lost power after Wilbert’s death, the urban areas were still very vibrant from what they could see from the horse carriage; probably because from the civilians’ viewpoint, this castle that symbolises the Moderates Faction preserves the vestiges of Wilbert when he was still alive for the sake of it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Following Lucia, they crossed through the corridors filled with a solemn &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;formal and dignified&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; atmosphere, and after a few turns -- they came before the door to the room at the end of a corridor.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is the room Mio-sama will be staying in during her visit here. The males’ room for Basara &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;[Chinese]The honorific used here: when translated literally, it would give [Mr Basara], but I left it out since it doesn&#039;t really fit&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; is at another place, someone else will be coming later to show you the way.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Opening the door after saying that, what they all saw behind the door turned Basara and the others speechless for a while. Not because it was stunning -- the truth was the opposite. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The high and wide spaces and high-class furnishings that created a luxurious feel, are all completely absent in this room; the room only contained a plain bed, sofa, table, and other basic necessities of the lowest grade. After entering the room, it seems that the lighting is also poor, making the place fairly dim. Seeing a room like that--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…From the furnishings seen on the way here and the decorations of the other rooms, this just isn’t a guest’s room but a warehouse for piling excess furniture. I’m fine with it, but is this really the room for the only daughter of the previous demon lord?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kurumi asked coldly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ramsas-sama wanted you to use the rooms on this side.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia indifferently answered, not minding Kurumi’s gaze at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…I see, the same old trick.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara had heard from Takigawa that Ramsas held no goodwill to Mio. There was ill-will between each royal family members held over seizing power, just like from a long time ago in the Human Realm -- from all indications, there was no need to anticipate the reunion between the so-called niece and uncle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Mio lowered her eyes, unable to hide the sorrow from showing up in her eyes. She was originally looking forward to coming to the Demon Realm, hoping to experience some warmth from her blood relatives, but yet now she is receiving the cold shoulder.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Since it’s become like this.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There is no need for her to remain here for long.  After thanking the maidservants who arrived to deliver their luggage, Basara then turned to Lucia--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I understand… Since that is the case, we’ll go along with the flow for now. Right now, can we ask for you to bring us to meet with Ramsas-sama? We all have our own lives to live, and we hope to return as soon as possible.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And said so very seriously. Only to see her shake her head and reply:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I’m very sorry. Ramsas-sama is currently out on business and is not in the city. He will be meeting you all tomorrow.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Not in the city? Wasn’t he the one who invited us here?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Yuki asked with an eyebrow raised.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Affirmative. If you had come when I had visited you, there would have been no problems at all with Ramsas-sama’s schedule. However, just like every one of you have your own lives to live, we also have our issues to settle. Especially now where it can be considered that we Moderates Faction are at war with the leader of the Current Demon Lord Faction Leohart.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia then continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“As the representative leader of the Moderates Faction, Ramsas-sama is very busy with his usual office work, and coincidentally today he had matters where he could not be absent from. We had complied with you delaying your journey by a month, so can you not wait for just a single day?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“”………………””&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since Lucia had said it that way, Basara and the rest could find no words to refute that at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Then why didn’t you just wait until tomorrow to bring us here?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, Kurumi was only able to muster a complaint quietly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank you all for your kind understanding. Well then--“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As Lucia said that, someone knocked on the door and entered the room.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Please have some tea.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That was a beautiful brown-skinned maidservant. The girl pushing a metal cart loaded with a tea set was one that Basara and the rest recognised. Thus, Basara couldn’t help but to say her name.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Zest…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[Hello.] Zest nodded at Basara, and then said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It’s been a long time since I last saw you, Toujou Basara -- no, Basara. &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Same as the above note about Mr.&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing her, Kurumi then leaned over to Yuki’s ear and asked:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“….So she is that Zest?”     “Yes, she was previously Zolgear’s subordinate.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Yuki answered Kurumi who had never met with Zest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You seem well… That is great.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes. Thanks to your care, Zest is very grateful to you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Towards the expression Zest showed when Basara expressed his relief, he was somewhat surprised. Because Zest faintly smiled. Seeing her smile for the first time--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…She can already smile…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara lamented. After defeating Zolgear -- the Toujou household temporarily took in Zest, until the one sent by the Moderates Faction brought her back to the Demon Realm, having agreed to find a place for her. Back then until when Zest was almost killed by Zolgear who had deemed her to be a burden, her expression was always icily inorganic. Then if she received protection as a witness, there was some uneasiness in handing over Zest who was of the Current Demon Lord Faction over to the Moderates Faction; so considering Zest’s power and the possibility that she might escape from the Demon Realm, Basara had told her that she can return any time before she had left. On their way here and until they were brought to this room, there were still worries on whether Zest received any ill-treatment -- seeing that it was all himself overthinking, it was all great. However--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Toujou Basara&#039;s line of sight was drawn to another change in Zest, and he gulped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--In Basara’s mind, Zest was a female with an extremely good body figure. It’s only been two months since they had defeated Zolgear and handed Zest over to the Moderates Faction, but yet Zest’s breasts had definitely gotten bigger. Not only Basara, this shock surpassed that of this sudden reunion in Mio and Yuki, causing them to stare at her in disbelief.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………Ah.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seemingly having noticed their gazes on her, Zest gently twisted her body shyly red-faced.  Even then, her breasts with a shocking amount of volume sensationally shook left and right.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“S-Sorry…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara hurriedly averted his eyes, and Zest shook her head and said [It’s fine].&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It’s not surprising that you’d be surprised… Even I did not expect that my body would become like this. According to the doctors -- this change is due to the release from my previously repressed state, not due to something like an illness, so there is no need for any worry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…--I see.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hearing Zest say that, Basara answered in a low voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ever since they gained victory from Zolgear, even Zest along with Maria and Sheera had escaped from Zolgear’s control. Since this was the result, rather than saying [change], it would be more appropriate to call it returning to the rightful original appearance. Just then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Zest will be responsible for Basara’s&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;same and the above note&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; daily life while you are here, so please do not hesitate to call for her if you ever need anything. Zest -- you will be bringing Basara&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;same, last time I’ll be doing this note in Lucia’s speech&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; to his room later.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Understood, Lucia-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing Zest bowing on receiving her order, Lucia said [Good.] and continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You’ve all probably become tired on your way here. There’s still some time before dinner, so please get some rest in this room. You’ll be notified when your meals are ready. I’ll be taking my leave now.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And Lucia turned to leave after taking a bow -- but then stopped before the door and turned back to say:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Maria -- remember to come to my room after drinking your tea, and give me a detailed report on all of your actions over there.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…….Alright, understood, Lucia-oneesama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Maria nodded, only then did Lucia leave the room for real.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Getting some rest in this room before having dinner, actually has the same meaning as [do not leave this room]. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Shinmai v05 025.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As lamenting wouldn’t change anything, Basara and the rest then tentatively chose to drink the tea Zest had prepared for them. After sitting down on the sofa around the large table in the center of the room, Zest placed tea cups before them and raised the white porcelain teapot to pour tea into Basara’s cup first. Basara then raised his cup to have a taste.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah… The aroma and taste is very similar to the red tea we usually have.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;The tea in the Demon Realm is very different, so considering that this is everyone&#039;s first time here, I tried to choose a tea that has a taste very similar to the ones in the Human Realm… Is it to everyone’s tastes?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes, it’s very good… Thank you, Zest.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Is that so, that’s great.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest slightly smiled happily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You two seem to be very chummy… I haven’t drank any tea yet but why is it that I am getting heated up?” &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Pun here: Jealousy&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Mio said while shooting daggers with her eyes while looking at Basara and Zest talking.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I’m sorry… I didn’t have that intention…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Zest said with a pained expression, and poured tea into Mio’s cup.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Later -- the atmosphere in the room became tense. Mio’s adoptive parents whom she had believed to be her real parents, were killed by the high-class demon Zolgear -- and Zest was his subordinate.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course, Zest was only following orders from her master Zolgear, and was unrelated to the death of Mio’s adoptive parents; but emotions wasn’t something that could be delineated &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;describe or portray (something) precisely/indicate the exact position of (a border or boundary)&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; , and it was for that reason that Basara had left Zest to the Moderates Faction. Even if Mio had given up on killing her sworn enemy Zolgear, immediately making her live together with the subordinate of her sworn enemy was just too cruel to her. It was for those reasons that Mio had practically not said anything to Zest when she stayed in the Toujou Residence temporarily, and Basara had left Mio as she is.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However -- when Zest stepped back after pouring Mio’s tea, Mio raised her tea cup and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Really… For me to be worried that you would be abused, it was all for nought.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Those words bringing a hint of snorting, caused everyone to be surprised, especially Zest who had become frozen. However, that couldn’t be helped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eh -- W-Why…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Realising that everyone was now looking at her, she frowned in confusion. Most likely, she hadn’t realised -- what the words she just said really meant. Those words she had just said so easily, probably unloaded much of what’s on Zest’s heart. Seeing Mio become like this, it seemed very cute in Basara’s eyes, hence he brought his hand to pat Mio’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Oi, what are you doing, Basara -- why are you suddenly acting like that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Nothing, it’s for no reason. I only suddenly felt the urge to do this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara said to the puzzled Mio who made no actions to stop him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Yuki, Maria, and kurumi smiled bitterly, and Zest quietly held back her tears. The tense atmosphere disappearing, warmth filled the space within the room.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 4===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While having tea, everyone talked about what they should be doing for their future.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Regretfully, it appears that they were not very welcome here, and all unanimously agreed that they should all return to the Human Realm as soon as possible after finishing what they needed to do. But right now, Mio was unable to decide whether she should hand over Wilbert’s power, and she only knows that she can’t make a decision she would regret. Speaking of which, there were people like Ramsas who wanted Mio to hand over Wilbert’s power, as well as people who wanted to crown Mio as the new Demon Lord within the Moderates Faction; even though Mio had no intention of ever becoming a Demon Lord, she has to carefully listen to the views of both sides and make an informed final judgement. As Ramsas is not in this city right now, they could only ask Ramsas to explain and clarify the consideration of both sides of the Moderates Faction. After discussing for quite a while--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The report Lucia mentioned about… Is it referring to what happened when you were threatened by Zolgear?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara impulsively turned towards Maria and asked something that caught his attention.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right… Even if it was my mother that was taken as a hostage, my actions would not be pardoned at all because of that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria showed a self-deprecating smile when answering Basara’s question.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Speaking of which, I didn’t expect to find a cold-blooded woman much icier than my older sister. Why are your sisters so different…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Kurumi, what do you mean by that? Your older sister will not get angry, so please tell me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kurumi’s words caused Yuki to become oppressive, pressing closer towards Kurumi with every single word.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“N-Nothing! W-What I wanted to say is, your coldness wouldn’t cause discomfort to anyone, but Lucia’s coldness will cause--“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As Kurumi frantically tried to explain--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So you mean… [I’m very very sorry]?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A sighing voice suddenly sounded out from within the room.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Toujou Basara felt a weight suddenly appearing on his thighs. Lowering his sights, a small young-looking succubus was already sitting on his thighs. Seeing the girl which seemed even younger than Maria--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah--!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The others also then noticed the presence of that small succubus and became shocked. Then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“M-Mama?!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Maria exclaimed with surprise, the small succubus -- Sheera let out a wry smile and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Arara~, why did you shout, Maria~? Are you that happy from seeing your beloved mother~?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Not that… I was only just shocked, seeing you suddenly appear from out of nowhere.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But Sheera ignored Maria’s retort, and tilted her head back to face Basara and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry, little Basara… &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;honorific used here is to address someone younger, little brother is used here&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; Aunty also wants to apologise to Mio&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;same as the note before, but little sister is the one used here&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; and everyone else. Our Lucia seemed to have shown everyone some disrespect.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The loli-succubus mother then giggled after saying that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-It’s fine… It’s been quite a while since we last saw you, Sheera &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;honorific used here is to address an elder, e.g. miss&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;. You seem just as lively as ever.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The first time Basara saw Sheera was when she appeared before Maria who had lost all hope thinking that she had been killed. She probably cracked a joke sensing that the situation was progressing down the wrong direction. Sheera was also fairly serious when she apologised -- but her personality is even livelier and more mischievous than Maria. Before the emissary &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;a person sent as a diplomatic representative on a special mission&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; from the Moderates arrived at their house, both Sheera and Zest had stayed in the Toujou Household, and those days were especially lively and noisy, they had almost died from being played around in Sheera’s hands.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…but then again,&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although Basara had only said his greetings at their reunion just now, he is right now especially anxious. Before Sheera had said anything, he had not sensed anyone sitting on his thighs, much less anyone entering the room. Of course, drinking some more tea might have made him relax a bit, but he had never once put down his guard. It appears that Maria’s mother, Sheera was definitely no pushover. Just as everyone was becoming scared of Sheera’s unpredictability, unable to say anything--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Really, just from who did she inherit her coldness from…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera said while supporting her face with her hand:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lucia is indeed a very serious person with a very strong sense of responsibility… But it further intensified after becoming Ramsas’s aide~.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From her speech patterns, one can probably take a glimpse into what level the position she held within the Moderates Faction was.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since Sheera had called the previous Demon Lord’s brother, the current leader of the Moderates Faction Ramsas without adding any honorifics, and even called Wilbert’s only daughter [little sister]. The reason why the emissary from the Moderates Faction had backed down in the past from Sheera’s smile when she had demanded for Maria who had assisted Zolgear to go with her was likely also for the same reason.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“She is indeed very careful and hardworking… But that personality of hers~~. The fear within Lucia’s subordinate’s hearts must be pretty abundant.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see… Zest must have had a pretty hard time as a junior.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After listening to Sheera, Basara then expressed concern for Zest who was standing by the wall, and--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Not really, because I am not one of Lucia’s subordinates.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is it so? Then just now Lucia asking you to look after me was…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lucia-sama was only repeating the task that was pre-allocated to me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ? Then who was the one who ordered you to look after me--“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as Basara raised another question in response to Zest’s reply--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara~, that would of course be me, little Basara~.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The reply came not from Zest, but from his thighs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So Sheera is Zest’s…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right~. I felt it would be better if someone who had been working under Zolgear were to not immediately work under Lucia. Of course, Lucia didn’t give her special treatment just because of her origins… it would just be a little too much for her little sisters under her to separate work and personal matters just like Lucia; needless to say, asking Zest&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;calling her her own little sister here&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; to assimilate into them is also the same. So the best course of action, was to let me who knew what had happened take care of her~.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Behind them, Zest lowered her eyes and then said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I really don’t know how I should give my gratitude to Sheera-sama… In my work as a maidservant, I am still lacking in many areas; it’s all thanks to the fact that I’m under Sheera-sama, that I’m able to continue working here until now.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah~, no need to worry about it. About the matter on you and Zolgear, I also have some stuff that I need to think about.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Toujou Basara expressed his understanding of the situation. For Zest to be able to smile while working under Lucia, it had very much surprised him -- and it turned out to be his misunderstanding. The reason Zest was able to smile, was because Sheera had taken Zest in as her subordinate after considering her circumstances. That&#039;s why--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…I’m really thankful to you, Sheera.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara lowered his head towards Sheera who sat on his thighs and expressed his thanks. Sheera did understand Zest’s circumstances and position in that incident, but there was also the thing about becoming Zolgear’s hostage. Normally speaking, she had no responsibility to be taking care of Zolgear’s subordinate, thus--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry about it. You all had always been taking care of Maria, and had even fought with your lives because of me… See it as my compensation to you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sheera bitterly smile and said. Just then, Maria finished her tea in a single breath--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Now then, I guess it is time for me to make my atonement.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After saying that calmly, Maria then got up from the sofa.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It’ll be fine. Would you like me to come along with you?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No need, Mio-sama. These things need to be accounted by me alone… I will report every single thing that I have done, and let myself be scolded by Lucia-oneesama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria shook her head at Mio who was worried about her--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Everyone please continue resting -- I will be back quickly.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And after saying that with a smile, Maria left the room with heavy steps.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 5===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After leaving the room, Naruse Maria lowered her head and sighed, then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“------“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Taking off her smile, her expression became frozen. Taking slow steps, Maria then walked slowly towards Lucia’s office. Within the spacious Wildart City -- Maria crossed the walkways alone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--Maria had passed countless ministers and maids, but she chose to not talk to them. All along the way, her sight remained fixated on the floor.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…It’ll be fine.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria was not worried about herself -- but rather, Basara, Mio, and the others. With the help from the Master-Servant Contract, Basara, Mio, and Yuki’s battle potential had underwent enhancements multiple times. With Kurumi adding to that, Zest also joined in now that they have come here.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Compared with Maria who could temporarily raise her battle potential by changing to her adult form, Zest already would usually have power similar to that of a high-class demon. Zest was different from Maria who is only good at housework, having gone through the training for a maid and is able to provide Basara and the others with powers and help of a level similar to them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…It’ll all be fine.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While walking slowly with her head lowered, Maria made a slight smile at the confidence within her heart. Soon -- Maria stopped. Raising her head, a door to a room was before her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Tightly clenching her right fist, Maria knocked on the door twice, and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Lucia-oneesama, Maria is here.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From behind the door came a light…yet clear voice--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[…Is it enough?]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And raised a question to Maria. To which Maria nodded and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes… That would be enough, thank you for letting me have some time.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A few seconds later--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[I see -- then please come in.]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The icy cold voice that sent chills through one’s spine came through the door -- and the thick wooden door began to open by itself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 6===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the demise of Wilbert, the crowning of the new Demon Lord Leohart created a new force in the Demon Realm. And that -- is the merging of the Radicals and Conservative Factions to become a single Current Demon Lord Faction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However -- the power of making the decisions in the highest levels of the Current Demon Lord Faction, was not held by Leohart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Because of the existence of those high-class Demons whose age was already uncountable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Council, the group that had elected Leohart to be the new Demon Lord, was made up of the seven deadly sins &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;[https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Seven_deadly_sins Seven deadly sins]&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;-- that is 「Lust」「Gluttony」「Greed」「Sloth」「Wrath」「Envy」 and 「Pride」, symbolising the seven seats within the organisation. Right now--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--It really was unexpected, for Zolgear to have died like that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. Once I think about his playground that I can never go to again; I can’t help but to feel regret over it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What’s the problem with that… He’s not the only one who can open a playground, so there wouldn’t be any problems if someone were to succeed him, right? If we were to lose the banquet and women just like that, it’ll be just way too wasteful.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Those Demons, are currently within the Royal capital of the Current Demon Lord Faction -- in the lowest floors of the city, the high-class conference room for the Cabinet that few knew about&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;No, not the one where you can put stuff into. The one in a government&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;. They were all sitting around the round table in the center of the room, casually chatting before the starting of the assembly, with the topic being about -- the death of the one who sat on the seat of 「Lust」, Zolgear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Speaking of which, Zolgear just had to die when his suspension was being looked into… His suspension was for planning to make a move against Wilbert’s only daughter, was it retribution?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You mean being cursed by Wilbert? Stop cracking jokes… What I think is, he probably caused his own death from playing around too much, since he spends most of his day playing around with those masterpieces of his.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[Seems logical] As almost everyone began to smile--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A certain someone had their eyes shut, remaining silent since the beginning. Sitting separate from the seven deadly sins, the young demon sitting in the eighth ranked seat -- with lean brows, that is the Current Demon Lord Leohart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He listened to the endless chatting revolving around the death of Zolgear--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…A bunch of lustful old thieves.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He very much despised them. For him to not say out his thoughts, he had his reasons.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--Right now, the Council holds authority equal to or more than Demon Lord Leohart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rhetorically on the surface, it was to prevent the over-concentration of power. the Council is not only the advisory body for the Demon Lord, if they determine that the Current Demon Lord is abusing the power, they have the power to remove someone from the throne. However -- in truth, that is not really the case.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart’s track record might have been outstanding during the previous war, but him being able to sit on the throne was purely because of the Council, he was the best and most useful tool.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On one side, by pushing for the young Leohart for the throne of the Demon Lord, they are able to display the assimilating of the younger generation into the political core, attracting even more support for them; on another side, they will be able to exert political influence through Leohart who they had supported. Even if the power of a single member of the Council is below that of Leohart, they are able to instantly strip him of his throne should he ever oppose them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
So in truth, the political core has never assimilated the younger generation into it at all, instead reverting to the political system that of before Wilbert came onto the throne. So currently, if Leohart wants to preserve his position as the Demon Lord, he needs to be of use to the Council.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But at best, that was only enough to maintain status quo.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Just you wait.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Demon Lord Leohart slowly opened his eyes, and gazed upon the members of the Council with eyes filled with enmity, and secretly vowed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…I will definitely personally eliminate you, the leeches of the Demon Realm, thoroughly.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart will not be willing to play as the Council’s puppet forever. For constructing a new order within the Demon Realm, peacefully suppressing the Moderates Faction and other opposing forces is of utmost importance -- but critically, he will have to eradicate the old vermin before his eyes first. Of course, having lived for a very long time in the Demon Realm, their influence is immense and immeasurable; if he were to make any missteps, he himself will be sentenced to death. Still, Leohart’s determination did not waver even one bit. Thus--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Firstly.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart looked towards an empty seat at the table, but it was not Zolgear’s seat representing 「Lust」. Including Leohart’s seat, only six out of the eight seats were filled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s right -- there is still a person who still has not arrived.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--And just then, the coarse thick door to the conference room suddenly began to slowly open, and then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I’m sorry everyone, for being late…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A high-class demon with a deep voice entered the room, and sat down at the seat for the highest ranked amongst the seven deadly sins. Belonging to the chairman of the unified management of the Council -- Archduke Belphegor.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What was wrong, Archduke Belphegor? You came especially late today.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A member of the Council asked Archduke Belphegor who has appeared long after the set time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah… I had lost track of time while settling the matter about Zolgear.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Belphegor gave a dark smile while replying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t we agree some time ago that before we decide on his successor, I will be filling in the seat for the seat of 『Lust』? I hold no interest at all to his research and property…but that playground of his is another matter, it’ll be a pity to lose it. And so I was thinking, that I should take over the management of that place.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Those words made another member of the Council smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hoho… That’s great. Handing over that place to Belphegor-sama is indeed proper, and now I no longer have to worry about finding a place to play.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Representing [Sloth], Belphegor is currently the oldest living demon in existence and holds a seat ranked higher than Zolgear. It has been said that his harem in the city is made up of as many as four.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, the chairman of the Council will naturally be no pushover. Standing at the pinnacle of the Current Demon Lord Faction, Belphegor himself symbolises the Ancient Times.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I’m really sorry for making His Majesty wait for these old bones… I’ve been busy turning those women into my property one by one, so my sense of time is not really that good.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hearing Belphegor say so without any heavy breathing or redness in his face at all--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Liveliness is a good thing to have, Belphegor.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leohart replied in a heavy tone. Compared to Wilbert’s power inherited by Mio or the leader of the Moderates Faction Ramsas, Leohart wanted to eliminate Belphegor much more. Thus, he must never let him realise the killing intent that exists within him at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, with a [Well then, everyone], Belphegor announced:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We shall begin today’s meeting now -- first up, the topic will be about the conditions of the remains of the spirits excavated not too long ago in the Western regions.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 7===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In this heavy atmosphere, a pair of succubus sisters were looking at each other.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Naruse Maria and the older sister Lucia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria had come to Lucia’s office to report about the events of her being coerced &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;persuade (an unwilling person) to do something by using force or threats&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; by Zolgear and the events related to that before and after it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although Maria had successfully rescued Mio from the high-class demon Zolgear’s palm, her mother Sheera was instead taken hostage and had to provide her assistance through threats. Maria had originally desperately complied with Lucia’s orders to ignore Zolgear’s threats and put Mio’s protection as a higher priority; but she instead sunk deeper due to a misstep and obeyed Zolgear -- fooling Mio and the rest and pulling them into even more danger. That was roughly the report Maria gave, reporting each and every crime she had made.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And right now -- the heavy atmosphere of the room was created from waiting for Lucia to say something after Maria had finished her report. In the atmosphere that made people hold their breaths in anticipation, Maria made no movements at all, and in the end--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Is that really all?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia spitted out in an extremely cold voice. After that--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Maria… I am very well aware of your love for mother, and I’m not blaming you for that. I am able to somehow understand your feelings when you found out the news of okaa-sama being taken hostage and how you felt when you made your moves after that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……I understand that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria quietly nodded.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It’s been hard on you, Maria… You must’ve been through a lot of pain, and your heart must be in a mess now. You are a very kind child, and I believe that betraying Mio-sama and Basara’s trust in you to help the scum holding okaa-sama hostage must have brought unbelievable pain.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And Lucia followed up with some kind words -- using not a warm tone, but one that could instantly freeze boiling water.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thus, Naruse Maria then wordlessly raised her sight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And looked into Lucia’s eyes -- who sat on a chair opposite her behind the office table.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her older sister’s eyes were as Maria expected, cold enough to send chills through her, and as for her expression -- it held even more oppressive pressure than Basara, causing Maria to gulp.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“However -- even then, what you should have been doing back then was to carry out your mission of protecting Mio-sama, not worrying over the safety of okaa-sama, much less defecting to help Zolgear. It’s just -- I had thought that you were not that foolish, so why were you?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia then asked again:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If you were the kind of person that would make this kind of mistake, I would’ve already opposed you becoming Mio-sama’s guardian in the nomination stage, as Ramsas would. However, why did you do something so foolish where you even betrayed those close to you?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To Lucia’s question, Maria already had an answer within her heart, but was unable to voice it out. Because she didn’t want to believe that was the truth -- much less say that it was. However--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
”Tell me, Maria -- just how did Zolgear even manage to delude you?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Yet Lucia pressed her again. Her shrewd older sister before her is not someone who you can make it past by stalling with silence or with lies.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
…Additionally.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If Maria remained silent, then it wouldn’t end with just Maria’s punishment. Either Sheera or Lucia may be viewed as the reason for Maria’s crimes. And for not stopping Maria, they might be investigated -- something that must not happen no matter what.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The two of them are family that Maria is proud of. The reason Maria committed those crimes, is because her power is insufficient -- there was definitely no responsibility on Lucia or Sheera. Thus--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……He told me, about something.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria decided to give up resisting and reveal the truth, and spitted it out:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The reason Mama lost power and turned like that -- was because she gave birth to me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia then stuttered with a shaking voice, slightly widening her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…I see, it really is the case…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia now understood. Maria has a very soft heart, but her sense of responsibility is very strong. So even if the circumstances caused conflict within her heart, and that was why Lucia had deeply believed Maria would never go as low as helping Zolgear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…I see.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the space out of Maria’s sight under the table, Lucia clenched her fist.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Trying to suppress the boiling rage without making any movements.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--What Zolgear told Maria, is indeed the truth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia and Maria’s mother Sheera was the first amongst the succubus race to become a high-class demon, someone who was a well-known figure in the Demon Realm. In the past, Sheera possessed a lot of power, and rumours say that she was a close ally to the strongest Demon Lord Wilbert.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However -- that Sheera one day, for one reason, lost over half of her power.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That, was giving birth to Maria. Everything was fine when Sheera gave birth to Lucia, yet she lost over half her power when she gave birth to Maria -- even becoming unable to even maintain her own original outer appearance, and assumed an appearance even younger than the Maria right now.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However -- everyone else including Lucia were always very careful, not letting Maria find out about it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment she finds out her own birth caused her cute Mother to lose her power and beauty, a heavy blow will undoubtedly be dealt to that child’s heart. As Sheera was someone very special to her, the aftereffects will definitely be very severe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
So as to not let Maria feel any guilt or trauma about her own existence, Sheera and Lucia teamed up with the people around them, protecting Maria from ‘’that’’ together -- by hiding its existence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It would be impossible to hide the fact that Sheera lost her power, but it might be possible to cut all connections of that to Maria. Thus, everyone lied to Maria that Sheera had lost her powers before having Maria, and spent all efforts on supporting this cover-up. Amongst the people in the Moderates Faction that Sheera was close with, there were quite a number who knew the truth due to being present during childbirth and other reasons, and they felt regret and sympathy over the blow from losing that overwhelming power. Both Lucia and Sheera had went around asking people to not leak out the truth, to the point where Wilbert had even agreed to persuade people to protect the secret. With the cooperation of so many people, they managed to hide the cruel truth from Maria and let her grow up uneventfully.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…But he dared to…!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia is already furious to the point where she was already gritting her teeth. Though she didn’t know where and how Zolgear of the Current Demon Lord Fation got that info where only a small fraction of the people in the Moderates Faction knew -- for him to be still harming people even after his death, he is lowest and dirtiest scum. What Lucia wanted the most was to personally end his life, but from the looks of his psionic response suddenly disappearing when tracking him, he’s probably already dead.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While the frustrated Lucia tried to suppress her rage--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……I’m sorry, Lucia-oneesama…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria seemed to take Lucia’s silence as anger directed at her, and lowered her head and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The mama onee-sama respected the most, was snatched away by me…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That--“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hearing Maria say monotonously, Lucia wanted to try to stop Maria&#039;s train of thought. Perhaps, Maria thought Lucia’s strict attitude was the result of her causing Sheera to lose her power. Or maybe she thought that that was her responsibility, and thus went down the wrong path of wanting to save Sheera alone. But--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…That’s not it.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The reason Lucia had been strict with Maria was that as the aide of the current leader of the Moderates Faction Ramsas, her responsibilities are now completely different from her previous post. Having to order her subordinates around and make judgements from time to time, she of course had to be partial and show no favouritism; even when her own little sister became her own subordinate, she must still stick to her principals.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And also, the responsibility of Sheera losing her powers didn’t fall squarely on Maria’s shoulders. Sheera had decided to have children despite knowing that there was that risk, and Lucia even supported her mother’s decision; and Maria had not disappointed them, being born healthily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thus, Lucia very much wanted to say「You’re wrong」「It’s not like that」. You -- the succubus named Maria, had been born with blessings from many people.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However -- Lucia was unable to say it out loud.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now, she is not Maria’s older sister, but still Ramsas’s aide. She still had to hand down the punishment to her subordinate who had done wrong, and carry it out as soon as possible. Hence--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…I now fully understand your reasons for your betrayal.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia stood up, putting aside her feelings as a family member -- as an older sister, and then frankly said with the expression and tone that of Ramsas’s aide:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But even then -- your mission is to protect Mio-sama, and putting aside any personal reasons, being swayed by personal emotions and putting your protection target into danger is definitely not allowed.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia began walking slowly towards Maria, and continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“As for your err, Ramsas-sama has given me full authority -- are you ready?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Yes.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria nodded slightly and replied.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thus -- Lucia materialised her weapon in her right hand, a whip specially made from the leather of the magical creature Behemoth. Standing before Maria while looking at her own little sister with cold eyes, Lucia slowly raised her right hand holding the whip--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Could you be more lenient?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A voice suddenly came from beside them to stop Lucia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! --Basara!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria’s shocked voice sounded out, naming the one who was leaning against the wall to the right of them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……How did you come in here?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In contrast to the shocked Maria, Lucia only frowned and asked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just now… Sheera suddenly appeared in the room you brought us to.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara began explaining:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“When I asked her how did she suddenly appear on my thighs, I found out that it was just one of her usual pranks -- through one of the magical space connecting tunnels made everywhere in case of an emergency. Thus I guessed that there should be one in your office too, and asked her to let me use it. As Maria seemed to be taking very long, I became worried.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara looked at Lucia eyes, his eyes filled with coldness that seemed different from Lucia’s.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…I see, so this is…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
According to past reports, Lucia somewhat understood Basara’s personality to a certain extent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This former Hero teen, while having a very warm and kind side, has a very cold side to him as well. Even when he was critically injured by Lars, he was still able to see his true side, and joined hands in the shadows.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Later, he had joined up with Lars to trick Zolgear and successfully managed to rescue the kidnapped Mio and Sheera -- even managing to defeat Zolgear. The first time Lucia met him was about a month ago when she had visited to invite them, and bringing them over to the Demon Realm will be her second time meeting him. As Lucia had only seen images of Basara, she has had some doubts about his other side, but now she can see that it was real.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;……Speaking of which… Really, Mother?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Having closed the door properly, Lucia was temporarily unable to figure out how Basara entered the room, but he had actually unexpectedly used Sheera’s space tunnels. While Lucia knew of its existence, she never realised her own office wasn’t an exception, making her feel -- she is far less than mother&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;far from the standards her mother is at&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;. After taking a mental sigh, Lucia straightened her heart, looked at Basara and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--However, that person will not accept your request so easily, right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The reason Maria assisted Zolgear, is because she was only thinking of saving her mother Sheera. Thus, if Maria had to take any other responsibility because of Zolgear, I hoped that she would lend a hand… That was what I had said to her.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara’s thought process was justifiable and reasonable, but it&#039;s just way too difficult to believe that Sheera would accept Basara’s request just because of that. If anyone else other than the creator of those secret passages were to find out of its locations and methods to utilise it, its usability and practicality would be lowered. As the secrets surrounding them would very likely be revealed once used by any unauthorised persons, it has to be used when all alternatives have been exhausted for it to be most effective. Sheera might not have fully understood that logic…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;If anything -- Sheera seems to have rated the youth Basara very highly’.&#039;&#039; Lucia thought quietly, and then continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…I understand. It’s no wonder that person would show such affections for her daughter… But, let me ask you -- why do you want to shield Maria? No matter how young I am, I am still Ramsas-sama’s aide, and even if you have been exiled, you are still a Hero -- you do realise that by trespassing my office, you are in no position to be defending yourself if you were to be disposed of?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia’s warning caused Maria to turn pale.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! --H-Hold on! Basara is--“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Shut up, Maria -- I am currently speaking with Basara here.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cutting off Maria’s retort, Lucia then turned to face Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…I am well aware of that, as well as the consequences too.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hearing Basara’s reply--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Then why did you still do it? Are you not afraid of death?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With those words, Lucia hinted that it wouldn’t be weird even if the cost of his actions was death.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course I am afraid of death… However, there are some things that one can never give in to despite one’s fear of death. Indeed, the family of the succubus Maria are you and Sheera, and she is part of the Moderates Faction, shouldering the big responsibility of protecting the daughter of the late previous Demon Lord. But still--“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara said firmly:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Right now, I will repeat what I had already said to the female demon you had sent to bring back Maria… This girl known as Naruse Maria, is my family; here, she is my precious sister, and I will not allow anyone to harm her -- even if you are her blood-related sister, you are no exception.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ &amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;! “&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That answer caused Maria to tremble, and then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Not only me, even Yuki who was in real danger and got implicated has already forgiven her. This incident had left no grudges in any of us, Maria has already repented thoroughly -- then again, wasn’t it you guys who had sent just Maria alone to protect Mio?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Taking a new breath, Basara then said to Lucia harshly:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Before you punish her for neglecting her duties, you guys should be reviewing what responsibilities you have in this -- isn’t that right, Lucia?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Within Toujou Basara’s heart, there were three things that he had to settle and confirm while in the Demon Realm no matter what.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Firstly, to solve the problems left behind by Wilbert’s power within Mio.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Secondly, to confirm the status and condition of Zest who had been handed over to the Moderates Faction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…And thirdly…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To stop 「Maria」 from receiving punishment for assisting Zolgear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Mio’s problems with the politics and circumstances of the Demon Realm goes a long way, so it naturally can’t be immediately solved. But now that he had confirmed that Zest was being treated well, next came Maria.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And for that--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
…He had to make the other party agree to give it up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia is Ramsas’s aide, so as long as she agrees to give up on Maria’s punishment, the people of the Moderates Faction would not chase after Maria to take responsibility. To Basara’s declaration to protect Maria to the end--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……So that’s how it is. Toujou Basara, I understand what you are getting at.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia showed that she understood it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“『Not allowing anyone to harm family』 Those words do really sound nice. However, do you really mean that you will unconditionally forgive, disregard, and connive the mistakes your family makes?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…As long as I know of her wrongdoings, I will immediately correct it, and sometimes even warn or scold her. However--“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara continued:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The two things being mentioned are completely different. The reason Maria obeyed Zolgear, was purely completely to save Sheera--“&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Even then, she should’ve told either you or me the situation, and sought for assistance; yet this child put her personal feelings first and acted on her own, causing Mio-sama to fall into Zolgear’s hands. Although things have ended well luckily with no serious consequences, it was just only the results that were not grave. Maria’s thought to help Mother might deserve sympathy, but what she did was completely not right -- is that not it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia was right, and Basara stuttered, unable to retort.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Additionally, Basara -- you may not have noticed, but you yourselves have done something wrong.” &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;referring not only to Basara here&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…We?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right.” Lucia nodded and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“After the incident with Zolgear -- you had used 『It was all to save her mother』, such nice words as an excuse to not administer punishment, never scolding or punishing her even once at all, probably to try to put her heart at ease. After that, you all had chosen to continue living with her like nothing has ever happened.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…And what is wrong with that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you still not get it? You -- ignored Maria’s guilt of betraying you and wanted her to continue staying in that house like nothing ever happened; because you never blamed her -- she doesn’t want to blame herself; yet you never thought -- of the possibility that Maria’s guilt has never completely disappeared, and some shreds of it still remains in her heart.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! &amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara then looked at Maria, shocked. And--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria silently lowered her eyes. That reaction and expression, revealed the truth to Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia then said to the speechless Basara:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Although she is very happy that she can still continue living together with you, by staying beside you all every day, she is constantly reminded that she had betrayed her precious family; and whenever you said such warm yet cruel words like 『It’s alright』 and smile, you deepen her pain. With that kind of pain, Maria had treated it as her punishment for betraying you all; yet this child continued to smile, making you all satisfied -- you all have never thought about what she was hiding under her smile.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia then said with words filled with scorn:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“There is no grudges at all between you all? How laughable. Whenever Mio-sama and Yuki’s curse of the Master-Servant Contract activates, you’ll help them eradicate the guilt that had activated it in the first place, helping them to be lifted from the curse; I believe those kinds of situations have already happened many times -- but, where is your care for Maria? Blindly giving kindness and goodwill, is sometimes more cruel than baring your fangs. You guys hope to protect Maria -- with the actions you have made, do you really think it is really helping this child? What you have told me doesn’t satisfy me at all, was it to only make yourselves happy?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, we--!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara wanted to retort, yet was unable to continue. Maria’s actions just now, had already shown who was right.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--Since you claim that it’s not it, I’ll give you a chance to prove yourselves.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If Maria -- Naruse Maria is really your family, and you really want to stop me from using punishment to save her heart, then there is nothing to be said -- you have to punish Maria yourself, eradicate her pain, and prove that you’re not all bark and no bite.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I have to punish Maria…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
These provocative words caused Basara to look at Maria at a loss. Maria remained quiet, but--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Maria…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Toujou Basara saw Maria walk slowly towards him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria kept quiet, only silently looked upwards at Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her eyes and expression, caused Basara to make a decision. Thus, Basara put both his hands on Maria’s shoulders, and turned to Lucia, quietly yet heavily saying:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I promise -- if that will really save Maria, and make you acknowledge me as Maria’s family.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 8===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the traditions of succubi, the punishments handed down must not only include pain applied to the body, but also making the one being punished feel shame.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The older sister Lucia originally planned to use the whip she used as her weapon to punish Maria, thus she wanted to lend her whip to Basara for him to use. But he shook his head and rejected her, as if wanting to reassure her while his hands were on Maria’s shoulders, and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Since I am the one punishing Maria, I would like to do so with my own hands.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And after that, Basara explained that his punishment for Maria, would be slapping her butt.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Also known as spanking. Because it was the normal usual method of punishment utilised by Human parents. Right now--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In order to receive the spanking, Naruse Maria was currently doing something while very red-faced.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And that is, taking off her clothes. Normally speaking, spanking didn’t have the requirement of taking off one’s clothes, but when Basara wanted to administer normal spanks, Lucia added on her request.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--Because she reckoned, that it wouldn’t be embarrassing enough.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia originally planned to not only use the whip on Maria, but to also strip off Maria’s clothes one-by-one until she was naked, making her admit her wrongdoings while stark naked, to thoroughly wipe out her guilt and bad feelings.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thus, that is why Maria is stripping off her clothes. If Basara wanted to create the effects of the whip cutting up Maria’s clothes, he could just simply tear her clothes apart. But as Basara didn’t want to do that, Lucia simply ordered Maria to first take off her clothes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not letting Basara take them off, but instead making Maria take them off herself. Because that is part of her punishment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With only her panties left on, Maria then stood before Basara who waited for her while sitting on the sofa, meeting up with his eyes--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I’m sorry, Basara. I…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And apologised for hiding her true feelings. Basara stretched out his left hand, and said while caressing her cheeks:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see -- you have also been in so much pain.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……I’m sorry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria apologised once more--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…--I understand. Right now, I will be punishing you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara then said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“However, that is not because you obeyed Zolgear and betrayed us, but because you still smiled despite the pain in your heart. Even if we are not related by blood, even if we are of different races, we are already family -- and I am your older brother. This may all be my wishful thinking, but that is what I believe. That’s why, if you as my little sister do something wrong, I will punish you…understand?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Yes.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria nodded, and Basara then turned to Lucia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lucia, the magic that Maria had used before on Kurumi, the one that had a similar effect and similar method of lifting the curse of the Master-Servant Contract made between me and both Mio and Yuki -- do you know how to use it too?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I do. Why do you ask?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To Lucia’s question, Basara raised Maria’s right hand and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I do know that I am about to punish her…to not let Maria conceal herself from us anymore, as well as to wipe out feelings like guilt from her heart. I would like to do things more thoroughly -- completely and thoroughly.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…If she were to enter an aroused state and experience pleasure and pain, wouldn’t it just nullify the purpose of the punishment?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara replied to Lucia’s point raised:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This kind of stuff, is according to the practices done in the past.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia looked silently at Basara for quite a while, and then replied:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……I understand, I’ll let Maria undergo my baptism, though this is very rarely done between succubi. My base succubus powers are stronger than Maria’s, so there should be an effect.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And thus began slowly walking towards Maria.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Maria… Look into my eyes.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Yes, Lucia-oneesama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though she clearly understood what was coming from the conversation between the two, Maria obeyed her sister. After signs of succubus magic showed up within Lucia’s eyes--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Looking directly into it -- a change then occurred within Maria’s childish body. Somewhere within her lower abdomen, a sweet warmth came pouring out, and began to swell. Just as Lucia said, the older sister’s powers were above Maria’s, and the baptism was of course more powerful.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah…Ah! …Aaaahhhh…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Beginning to gasp, Maria, collapsed into Basara’s arms. While sitting on the sofa, Basara took the opportunity to place Maria on his thighs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her breasts on Basara’s thighs, facing the side -- she was now in the position easiest for Basara to spank her butt. Then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--I’m beginning.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara’s low voice sounded out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Fuahh… A,Ah…&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Spread on Basara’s thighs, gasping hotly while gulping--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Yes, Basara, please do… Please heavily punish me who had deceived you all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria said such repenting words -- next moment, Basara’s palm landed on Maria’s rump, the slap sounding out in Lucia’s office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The strong force hitting her paralysed her for a moment -- and then immediately came the scalding pain.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Having gone through a Hero’s training, Basara had slapped Maria’s butt without holding back -- twisting his wrist to its limit, his hand had followed the most optimal line to apply the perfect slap. Right from the start, the strength applied was beyond surprising.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The effects of the baptism didn’t soothe it at all, just like the panties she wore. Thus, Maria gave a scream with tearful eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! ! --Ffuuaaaaaaahhhhhhh♥”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A scream that Maria as a succubus was not expecting, an aroused scream that weakened her. Her improper gasps, clearly entered Maria’s ears.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…W-Why did I…give such a…scream…?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria became shocked and dazed, but she was unable to continue thinking.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Because the second hit landed on her butt.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eek! Aaahhh&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;-----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;♥”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Shinmai v05 043.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That, undoubtedly, is purely pain only, with no sense of pleasure at all -- but yet, what escaped her mouth was a pleasured scream.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her reactions and what she felt was clearly mismatched, pushing Maria’s mind into a mess.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Ah.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But she then quickly realised, the pain only existed on her butt -- under the surface, something began changing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That bundle of warmth began to grow even faster. When the third hit landed--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;～～～～～～～&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;♥”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Naruse Maria finally understood.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Within her body, the pain and pleasure were intertwined together. Experiencing that scalding pain, even hotter pleasure came along with it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thus -- in the next instant, she was bathed in pain and pleasure.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With the fourth hit, the pain and pleasure were equal. The fifth hit brought her pain past her limits -- with the sixth hit, only pleasure was left in her mind. With that -- everything began running out of control.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haah! …Basara! Ah♥ fu… A-Ahhwoo♥ ooo! Ah--Aaahhhh♥”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With each loud hit Basara landed on Maria’s butt, Maria’s mind was pulled even deeper into the muddle. The bundle of hotness within her began spreading from her butt and thighs. Each time the crisp sound resounded, Maria screamed with an intoxicated expression.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the moment the tenth hit landed--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! &amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt; Haaaaaaaaahhhhhhhhhh&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;～～～～♥ &amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The accumulated pleasure suddenly exploded, and Naruse Maria was instantly pushed to the peak.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With her eyes white from the climax, that small childish body lay paralysed on Basara’s thighs; the pleasuring aftertaste left her sluggish, gasping with pleasure. Suddenly, Basara had stopped spanking her butt -- and Maria indulged while immersed in her happiness and fulfilment. Seeing this--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“--You couldn’t possibly be thinking, that that would be enough to settle things?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Having watched the whole process up till now, Lucia said coldly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you really think with only ten spanks…a single climax, would be enough to make this woman forget it all? If that is so, then you -- are looking down on a woman’s and Maria’s pain.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara answered Lucia’s disappointment with silence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As if telling her, that it’s not over yet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah… Aaoo… Basa-ra…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria turned to face him with her eyes wet from the pleasure, and realised the hand Basara spanked her with, had went under the band of her panties.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah……”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Without any time to resist, Basara pulled off her panties to her knees. Her small round butt, its redness is now completely visible--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…My, goodness…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But it didn’t hurt at all. Probably because the waves of pleasure were washing over her then subsiding, Maria’s butt was moving about on Basara’s thighs, seeming to be very comfortable. Hence, Basara looked at her and said:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Maria.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raising his left hand, that palm then landed on her butt.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Why…Why, am I so hot…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria has been forced to experience her butt being punished, and is experiencing pain -- as well as even stronger pleasure. What was transmitted from the palm, is burning pleasure, as if that hand is warmly scalding her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah--…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria suddenly felt a sense of floating. Basara had lifted her body from under her, removing her panty that was at her knees, and placed her back on his thighs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--However, not horizontally in a position where he could easily spank her butt this time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It instead was a position where Maria was facing Basara, where she was straddling him and as if they were about to hug each other.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria understood that now, she has to look on at him while he administers the pleasure punishment to her naked butt, until all her pain disappears from her heart. Maria had no intention of resisting, because she didn’t want to hide anything from Basara anymore.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thus, she silently waited for Basara to make his move. Basara’s right hand then smacked onto the butt that was usually covered by her panties, and in that moment--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! --Haaaaaaaahhhhhhh♥”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The first one sent Maria to the peak again -- and when the next one landed, Maria reached the peak once more while looking at Basara’s face.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With every smack landing on her naked butt, each and every one was filled with the happiness from being spanked while sitting on his thighs -- with the pleasure acting as a catalyst for her overwhelming happiness. Very soon, Maria’s young and tender body began showing signs of a woman’s fulfilment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even while receiving punishment, the tips of Maria’s breasts were swollen and stiff, and from her mouth and between her legs flowed out Maria’s ‘’love fluids’’. Maria’s small childish body was exploited by Basara with every smack landing just like that, adding on to her hotness rapidly. Once the number passed ten, Maria finally reached her limit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! &amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;～～～～～～～～～～～～～～♥&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Naruse Maria’s hands and legs wrapped around Basara, and her whole body quivered.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……! Shaaahh…! Aaaoo… Fu-aahh……♥”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She could no longer think, and to Maria who could only manage to gasp for air--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;-------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara raised his right hand. Seeing this--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! --Basara!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia couldn’t help but to stop him from the side, but -- in the next moment, what Naruse Maria’s butt that had already reached its limit received, is pampering. Basara’s hand caressed Maria’s butt that had finished receiving its punishment as if to comfort it, no different from the patting of a child’s head to give praise.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……It’s been hard on you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara’s tender voice came from her side. Thus--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……..!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria heavily nodded while many tears rolled from her large wet eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And proceeded to hug Basara even tighter, calling his name once more.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is this punishment enough?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At Basara’s question, Lucia wordlessly gave her affirmative. With that, Basara’s expression relaxed, and lightly caressed Maria’s hair.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--Maria has already fallen asleep on Basara’s thighs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia handed the anti-inflammatory ointment originally to be used after the whipping to Basara, who then immediately began to apply it to Maria’s butt gently. It was here where Maria had completely lost consciousness. &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Had fallen asleep, but &#039;&#039;&#039;was&#039;&#039;&#039; still aware of what’s going on&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Maria’s normal breathing, showed that she is all well and at peace.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…I see.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia watched as Basara caressed Maria’s head with eyes filled with compassion, and then managed to finally somewhat understand why Sheera had taken a liking to Basara. Maria probably didn’t know as it was something from before her birth -- the baptism punishment Basara had requested, was Sheera’s customary trick.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Probably while talking to Basara, Sheera had realised that a part of his heart was similar to hers. With someone like that accompanying Maria, Lucia felt reassured, yet at the same time slightly afraid.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--Basara is the son of the former Hero [God of War] Jin·Toujou, and just that alone will be enough to make one be on their guard already. But compared with the expression of love and affection before her eyes--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Just what is with this youth, that can occasionally show cold eyes that can make even me shudder…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Who knows, hiding within Basara’s heart might be an unimaginably cold emotion.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Speaking of which.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara managed to do what he had said, to liberate the pain in Maria’s heart. Despite seeing the heart of her cute little sister being saved by him, there were some bad feelings within her, but even if she managed to stem that fuzzy thought, she was still fearful of him, which just seems too exaggerated...&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And right now, there is still something important to do -- thus Lucia began to take action.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia turned to stare at her office door, and that wooden door suddenly began to open -- and the teenage girl behind the door trembled from the shock at the sudden change of events--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! --Ah… Ah…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And fell and sat down on the ground. That was the female Hero who had come to the Demon Realm together with Basara--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kurumi…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara called out her name in shock, after thinking about Maria who was asleep on his thighs, he didn’t stand up. Lucia began walking towards Kurumi in Basara’s place, and then said while standing before her eyes:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Not only did you move about in the city unauthorised, you also secretly listened in on my office… To think that a Hero would do such a unlawful act.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I… I……”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Lucia’s ruthless criticism, Kurumi panicked and looked towards Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She probably came to look as Basara and Maria seemed to be taking a very long time -- and after hearing the various noises from just now from the office, she remained out here until now since it wasn’t convenient for her to escape back to the room.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--Now, just how should she be handled?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She had not gone through the passage Sheera had constructed, as Lucia would notice it since it had already been used by Basara. With the Master-Servant Contract Basara had made with Mio and Yuki, they could sense his location; but Mio would be too conspicuous since she is the only daughter of the previous Demon Lord, and while Yuki could move about secretly, she could not conceal herself as well as Kurumi who could hide with the magics of her spirits, and thus that is probably why they had sent her. They were all worried about Basara and Maria and thus came to check, that thought was not too hard for him to understand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
…However.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unfortunately, Lucia is not in a very good mood right now. That was only natural, at this time, the one to release Maria’s pain and make her flighty and happy was originally supposed to be Lucia herself. While originally even thinking that Basara had no such skill, that very role was very abruptly taken away from her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah… Aahh…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Probably hearing Maria’s sounds of fawning, Kurumi’s body seems to have been infected and began to seem to feel pleasure and excitement, a dark pleasure starting to take over her heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Usually, as Ramsas’s aide -- as well as managing many maidservants, Lucia had to exercise self-discipline and restrain her own desires; but in truth, her instincts as a succubus is much stronger than Maria’s. And right now -- Lucia isn’t calm enough to be able to suppress her intense instincts.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--Thus, for all of Lucia’s negative and bad feelings, she had decided to vent it all on Kurumi before her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In other words, she let loose her succubus baptism. With effects even able to make Maria of the same race to lose strength in her legs, it enveloped Kurumi who had her immunity lowered from being in the Demon Realm--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eh&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt; Ah……”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And caused her to collapse over with her eyes glazing over. Lucia took the opportunity to hold her in her arms, and then brought her into her own office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lucia, why did you…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the words Basara had at the assault before him--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I’ve said it before. As the aide of Ramsas-sama, this place is my office.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While holding Kurumi within her arms, Lucia walked towards Basara and answered:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“And this city, is the residence of the previous Demon Lord Wilbert-sama, and also for the current management of the Moderates Faction. She had not used Mother’s tunnel, which shows that she had moved within the city unauthorised to find this place -- and with that, you have no say in what I want to do.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia said so while looking at Basara, her succubus instincts blazing within her eyes, her body letting out an S-Class aura.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! …Kurumi has not done the Master-Servant Contract with me, and even if the others did, they do not know the ways within the city; so it’s likely that just like me, it was Sheera who told her the way.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just now, Lucia seemed to relatively address her mother more respectfully, thus Basara wanted to try raising her name to calm Lucia down. However--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No need to bring my mother’s name out… This place is my room, so the right to decide is all mine.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After saying that, she laid down Kurumi on a sofa adjacent to the table adjacent to the sofa Basara was sitting on, and with neat and tidy actions, she began taking off Kurumi’s clothes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But Lucia’s rationality just barely managed to not be overtaken by her succubus instincts, and so even if she lost her calm, she didn’t forcefully rip apart Kurumi’s clothes. In the blink of an eye, she had stripped Kurumi to her underwear, after undoing the clasps and removing her bra to reveal those luscious breasts, her hands moved towards her panties--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! --Kurumi is your little sister’s rare close friend! If you harm her, Maria will most likely become sad, so please think it over!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hearing Basara saying that advice to try to get her to stop--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucia stopped her hands which had already hooked onto Kurumi’s panty. She has her back facing Basara, so she was unable to see what expression he had on right now. However -- after a brief silence, Lucia straightened up and turned around--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……Alright. For Maria’s sake, I’ll give you another chance.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And said while looking at Basara with her eyes raging with her succubus instincts:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You shall take my place, give me a display with this girl, and satisfy my needs -- if I am not satisfied, I will no longer care if she is Maria’s friend, and administer true happiness devoting all my succubus powers, making her forget even her own identity. Don’t make me make any more allowances.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! ……I understand.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara helplessly promised. Although further persuasion or negotiation was not impossible, but if he were to fail and provoke Lucia, it’ll be hard to say in what state Kurumi would end up in. Thus--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara lightly raised Maria and laid her on the sofa to continue sleeping, and then headed towards the sofa Kurumi and Lucia were at.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 9===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kurumi has a secret which no one else knows.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That -- is a thought that has been hidden within her heart for a long time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just like Mio and Yuki, Kurumi also wanted to make the Master-Servant Contract with Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Because.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kurumi realised -- unconsciously, a distance between her and the others already.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--Compared to the gap that existed between her and him back when the Spirit Lance Byakko user Hayase Takashi had fought one on one with Basara while being supervised by Shiba Kyoichi, that gap back then was smaller than now.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The gap, does not refer to their battle potential, but instead her relationship with Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the past when she had first arrived at the Toujou Residence to assist Yuki, she discovered a tie connecting Basara to Mio, Yuki, and Maria which can never be told to anyone, which had already greatly raised all of their battle potential.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That increase had gradually left Kurumi behind in the dust -- so naturally, Kurumi also wanted to make the Master-Servant Contract with Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…However.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Regrettably, she cannot do so. With Jin’s influence, Yuki has already gotten the elders’ permission to continue staying by Basara’s side, so she will probably not be leaving the Toujou Household; but for Kurumi, she must return to the [Village] immediately once an order come, without an option of rejecting it. Thus, if any weird demonic fluctuations were to be found hidden within her body, it’ll bring trouble to her parents. With just Yuki’s matter alone, the Nonaka household was already in a difficult position. Even if the other party is Basara, if the matter of Kurumi making a Master-Servant Contract of the Demons is to be exposed, the elders might even possibly make the decision to make Basara an elimination target; if it comes to that, then they won’t send Takashi and [Byakko] to do it, but instead that Shiba Kyoichi personally to do it. In any case, that must be avoided at all costs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Because there is no chance of winning any of that at all…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At their current level, they have no chance of winning against that monster at all… to the point where Jin would have to make a move himself&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;they would need him to stand a chance&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;, but Jin has already left the frontlines long ago… &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;no longer at his prime anymore&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; Thus, she must not let the elders send out Shiba Kyoichi.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And that, is the reason why Kurumi has always suppressed her desire for the Master-Servant Contract with Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
…But still, Kurumi still wanted to close the gap in her relationship with Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In order to not be left behind, Kurumi had willingly let Maria do many embarrassing things to her. Even then, the bond connecting the girls to him was not only the Master-Servant Contract, but also the ties as comrades who survived deadly fights -- leading to Kurumi doing many low things together with everyone, but yet she still felt so far away from everyone else. Hence, in order to try to fill that hole, she would ask her spirits to use magic to make her have [A Certain Dream] while she slept.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That dream, is Nonaka Kurumi’s heart’s desire -- becoming Basara’s lover.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--In the dream, the love between her and Basara deepened with each passing day.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The relationship between the two in that dream, was different from Maria’s plots which had skipped past several sequences or stages -- it was through many dates, holding hands, embracing each other, that they became closer to each other.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In other words, Nonaka Kurumi’s pure love.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
About a week ago, Kurumi had finally kissed Basara in the dream. In reality, even though the two of them have done many lewd things, they have never kissed even once; so even if it was in a dream, Kurumi still became very happy to have caught up to the other girls. From then, Kurumi had then kissed with Basara no less than a thousand times within her dream. Though they had never kissed even once in real life, she had experienced kisses involving the tongue countless times within her dream, and even trying out some even bolder things.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Heh heh.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Kurumi who had always been manipulated by Basara and Maria in real life, was relatively bold in her dream.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As in reality doing that last final stage&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;sex&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; would make her loose the spirits’ protection, she still dared not do try it within her dream; rather, the pleasure, happiness and orgasms she enjoyed in her dreams were not from caressing each other. During that kiss with Basara, she had felt especially happy -- thus recently, she had taken the initiative in asking Basara for more.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--And right now, Nonaka is right within her dream.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What made her arrive at that conclusion, is the sense of floating that doesn’t seem real, as well as the sweet bitterness within her body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kurumi was only in her panties in that unfamiliar room, straddling Basara’s thighs while he sat on a sofa caressing and kissing her; rubbing her breasts from her back, while he kissed her neck. She couldn’t possibly do such a thing with Basara in an unfamiliar place in real life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And that is why, this is undoubtedly a dream. &#039;&#039;Now then, it’ll be just a waste to be passive here, wouldn&#039;t it?&#039;&#039; Thinking that--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Aaaahhhh… Basara♥”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kurumi turned around while sitting on Basara’s thighs, made contact with Basara’s lips with her lips, going for a kiss, and--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Chuooo… Aahh-hh…! Haahh…! Lyahh… Basara… Chiii.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lewdly entangling their tongues, taking the initiative to ask Basara for more, had just made Basara show a surprised expression.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Str…an…ge…?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Despite the fuzziness of her mind, Kurumi became slightly suspicious. In her dreams, her experiences with Basara were all linked up, so the Basara before her should be aware of her activeness. But just why -- harbouring some suspicions while in a deep kiss, did Kurumi hear the sound in the next moment, one which was impossible in her dream.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ …&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;Kurumi?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara’s slightly puzzled voice. In the next moment--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kurumi became shocked. She did really just hear Basara’s voice, but that should’ve been impossible. In order to keep her dreams separate from her reality -- no matter how great or happy the dreams were, she could never hear any voices.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-Then now…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kurumi scanned her surroundings, and realised that behind her -- Lucia was carrying a naked Maria and watching them while sitting on the sofa opposite to them. Unable to trick herself anymore, she now understood -- this is now undoubtedly, reality. Thus--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“N-No way… W-Why, am I…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her debaucherous &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;excessive indulgence in sex, alcohol, or drugs&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; side, Lucia saw it -- no, the one she dreaded finding out the most is Basara, and it just had to be under these circumstances for her to have a kiss with Basara. Kurumi almost went insane from the embarrassment, and severely panicked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ ! &amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;----&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;Kurumi, calm down.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara then said in a shockingly grave tone. That dangerous voice, caused Kurumi to freeze her thoughts, and look at him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I want to continue -- do you understand?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With the abnormality of Lucia looking on from the side, Basara had said out words that would be impossible even within her dream, much less reality. The kiss that left no room for negotiation--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Ah…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Made Kurumi remember -- no, understand, the situation where she had eavesdropped on Lucia’s office after going to check on why Basara and Maria were taking so long…and what happened after that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In other words, this situation was brought about by her herself. The reason for that, was likely due to Lucia’s orders, so the reason Basara was obeying her is--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…She’s threatening him with either me or Maria.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Theoretically, if there’s no other way, Basara will most likely use his weapon, but now is not the most suitable time to do that. They had only just entered the Demon Realm and had accomplished nothing much -- they can’t have a fallout with the Moderates Faction now, as they haven’t done anything about Mio’s situation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It’ll all just waste everyone’s efforts in coming to the Demon Realm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although Lucia looking straight at her caused her a lot of embarrassment--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…But this is all my fault…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not only did she not catch up to Basara and the rest, she was now pulling them down, at such an early time no less. With the regret and remorse surging within her--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“……..!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kurumi tightly closed her eyes -- but only for a short moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since she had caused the disaster before her, what she has to do now, is now clear before her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In order to not pull everyone down -- she will redeem her wrong. Lucia is a succubus -- as well as Maria’s sister, so what she would want would not be all too hard to guess. Then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Then let’s just do it…!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kurumi changed her thoughts again, and simply changed this scene with her mind into a dream -- this is no longer reality. With that, Lucia’s gaze wouldn’t be something to be mindful anymore. Thus--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ah, please… continue, Basara♥”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Saying that, Kurumi once again took the initiative and kissed Basara again. The second kiss -- this time, Basara did not become surprised anymore, immediately intertwined their tongues, letting out lewd sounds.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The intoxicating sounds which she would never hear in her dreams, intoxicated Kurumi even more.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
All of her sensitive spots, were then caressed by Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“aahh, haah… Don’t♥Ahh… Ya-fuaaahhh, brother… Brother Basara~♥! Haah-ah… Don’t… Don-haaahhhhh♥”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Breasts, hips, thighs -- all those areas tingled from the obscene caresses. Basara’s hand had even slipped into her panty and began kneading her butt, giving her heaven. She then guided that hand in the panty to take it off her, hurriedly twisting her legs and hips, waiting for it to be slipped off her, to become fully naked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And then once again kissed Basara, her lust heating her up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please, brother Basara… Lick my armpits…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just then Kurumi pleaded Basara to attack her weak spot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basara instantly stopped sucking her breasts.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…………”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the distance where their breaths were making contact, the two of them looked at each other for a moment which lasted for an eternity. After that, everything seemed to be in slow-motion.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kurumi’s two hands crossed together behind her head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Watching as Basara slowly brought his mouth to that particular spot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She closed her eyes, and in the next moment--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;-------&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Nonaka Kurumi’s all shattered, her climax dominating over her, and then--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;…Ah…&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She used all her strength -- to fall into Basara’s arms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Feeling his warmth, Kurumi’s consciousness suddenly began thinning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But in the last moments--&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
『…………』&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kurumi heard, Lucia’s voice coming from a distant place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The reply Kurumi had anticipated from Lucia -- acknowledging her and Basara.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hence Nonaka Kurumi closed her eyes, reassured.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even if everything before her was pitch-black, she had no fear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Because Basara’s warmth is protecting her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Translator&#039;s Notes and References==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;references/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
{{SimpleNav}}&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;/noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>112.201.117.48</name></author>
	</entry>
</feed>